Title of Invention

AZAINDAZOLE COMPOUNDS AND METHODS OF USE

Abstract Compounds are provided that act as potent antagonists of the CCR1 receptor, and have in vivo anti-inflammatory activity. The compounds are generally aryl piperazine derivatives and are useful in pharmaceutical compositions, methods for the treatment of CCR1-mediated diseases, and as controls in assays for the identification of competitive CCR1 antagonists.
Full Text WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
AZAINDAZOLE COMPOUNDS AND METHODS OF USE
CROSS-REFERENCES TO RELATED APPLICATIONS
[0001] This application claims priority to U.S. Provisional Application No. 60/693,525
filed on June 22, 2005, the contents of which is incorporated herein in its entirety for all
purposes.
STATEMENT AS TO RIGHTS TO INVENTIONS MADE UNDER
FEDERALLY SPONSORED RESEARCH OR DEVELOPMENT
[0002] NOT APPLICABLE
REFERENCE TO A "SEQUENCE LISTING," A TABLE, OR A COMPUTER
PROGRAM LISTING APPENDIX SUBMITTED ON A COMPACT DISK.
[0003] NOT APPLICABLE
BACKGROUND OF THE INVENTION
[0004] The present invention provides compounds, pharmaceutical compositions
containing one or more of those compounds or their pharmaceutically acceptable salts, which
are effective in inhibiting the binding of various chemokines, such as MIP-1 a, leukotactin,
MPIF-1 and RANTES, to the CCR1 receptor. As antagonists or modulators for the CCR1
receptor, the compounds and compositions have utility in treating inflammatory and immune
disorder conditions and diseases.
[0005] Human health depends on the body's ability to detect and destroy foreign pathogens
that might otherwise take valuable resources from the individual and/or induce illness. The
immune system, which comprises leukocytes (white blood cells (WBCs): T and B
lymphocytes, monocytes, macrophages granulocytes, NK cell, mast cells, dendritic ceil, and
immune derived cells (for example, osteoclasts)), lymphoid tissues and lymphoid vessels, is
the body's defense system. To combat infection, white blood cells circulate throughout the
body to detect pathogens. Once a pathogen is detected, innate immune cells and cytotoxic T
cells in particular are recruited to the infection site to destroy the pathogen. Chemokines act
as molecular beacons for the recruitment and activation of immune cells, such as
lymphocytes, monocytes and granulocytes, identifying sites where pathogens exist.
[0006] Despite the immune system's regulation of pathogens, certain inappropriate
chemokine signaling can develop and has been attributed to triggering or sustaining

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
inflammatory disorders, such as rheumatoid arthritis, multiple sclerosis and others. For
example, in rheumatoid arthritis, unregulated chemokine accumulation in bone joints attracts
and activates infiltrating macrophages and T-cells. The activities of these cells induce
synovial cell proliferation that leads, at least in part, to inflammation and eventual bone and
cartilage loss (see, DeVries, M.E., et al., Semin Immunol ll(2):95-104 (1999)). A hallmark
of some demyelinating diseases such as multiple sclerosis is the chemokine-mediated
monocyte/macrophage and T cell recruitment to the central nervous system (see, Kennedy, et
al.,7. Clin. Immunol. 19(5):273-279 (1999)). Chemokine recruitment of destructive WBCs
to transplants has been implicated in their subsequent rejection. See, DeVries, M.E., et al.,
ibid. Because chemokines play pivotal roles in inflammation and lymphocyte development,
the ability to specifically manipulate their activity has enormous impact on ameliorating and
halting diseases that currently have no satisfactory treatment. In addition, transplant rejection
may be minimized without the generalized and complicating effects of costly
imrnunosuppressive pharmaceuticals.
[0007] Chemokines, a group of greater than 40 small peptides (7-10 kD), ligate receptors
expressed primarily on WBCs or immune derived cells, and signal through G-protein-coupled
signaling cascades to mediate their chemoattractant and chemostimulant functions.
Receptors may bind more than one ligand; for example, the receptor CCR1 ligates RANTES
(regulated on activation normal T cell expressed), MlP-1α (macrophage inflammatory
protein), MPIF-1/CKP8, and Leukotactin chemokines (among others with lesser affinities).
To date, 24 chemokine receptors are known. The sheer number of chemokines, multiple
ligand binding receptors, and different receptor profiles on immune cells allow for tightly
controlled and specific immune responses. See, Rossi, et al., Ann. Rev. Immunol.
18(l):217-242 (2000). Chemokine activity can be controlled through the modulation of their
corresponding receptors, treating related inflammatory and immunological diseases and
enabling organ and tissue transplants.
[0008] The receptor CCR1 and its chemokine ligands, including, for example MDP- 1α,
MPIF-1/CKP8, leukotactin and RANTES, represent significant therapeutic targets (see Saeki,
et al., Current Pharmaceutical Design 9:1201-1208 (2003)) since they have been implicated
in rheumatoid arthritis, transplant rejection (see, DeVries, M.E., et al., ibid.), and multiple
sclerosis (see, Fischer, et al., JNeuroimmunol. 110(1-2): 195-208 (2000); Izikson, et al., J.
Exp. Med. 192(7):1075-l080 (2000); and Rottman, et al., Eur. J. Immunol. 30(8):2372-
2377 (2000). In fact, function-blocking antibodies, modified chemokine receptor ligands and
2

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
small organic compounds have been discovered, some of which have been successfully
demonstrated to prevent or treat some chemokine-mediated diseases (reviewed in Rossi, et
al., ibid). Notably, in an experimental model of rheumatoid arthritis, disease development is
diminished when a signaling-blocking, modified-RANTES ligand is administered (see Plater-
Zyberk, et al., Immunol Lett. 57(1-3): 117-120 (1997)). While function-blocking antibody
and small peptide therapies are promising, they suffer from the perils of degradation,
extremely short half-lives once administered, and prohibitive expense to develop and
manufacture, characteristic of most proteins. Small organic compounds are preferable since
they often have longer half lives in vivo, require fewer doses to be effective, can often be
administered orally, and are consequently less expensive. Some organic antagonists of CCR1
have been previously described (see, Hesselgesser, et al., J. Biol. Chem. 273(25): 15687-
15692 (1998); Ng, et al.,J Meet. Chem. 42(22):4680-4694 (1999); Liang, et al.,J. Biol.
Chem. 275(25):19000-19008 (2000); and Liang, et al, Eur. J. Pharmacol. 389(l):41-49
(2000)). In view of the effectiveness demonstrated for treatment of disease in animal models
(see, Liang, et al., J. Biol. Chem. 275(25):19000-19008 (2000)), the search has continued to
identify additional compounds that can be used in the treatment of diseases mediated by
CCR1 signaling.
BRIEF SUMMARY OF THE INVENTION
[0009] The present invention provides compounds having a formula selected from the
group consisting of:

or a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, hydrate or N-oxide thereof. In the formulae above, the
subscript m is an integer of from 0 to 4.
[0010] The symbol R1 is a substituent independently selected from the group consisting of
C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -S(O)3Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra,
-X1S(O)3Ra, -X1ORa, -CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb, -X1NRaCORb, -X1CONRaRb,
X1S(O)2NRaRb, X1S(O)2Ra, -ORa, -NRaRb, -NRaCORb, -CONRaRb, -NRaS(O)2Rb,
3

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-S(O)2NRaRb, -S(O)2Ra, -X1CORa, X1CONRaRb, and -X1NRaS(O)2Rb, wherein X1 is C1-4
alkylene and each Ra and Rb is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen,
C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, or optionally Ra and Rb when attached to the
same nitrogen atom are combined to form a 3- to 7-membered ring having from 0-2
additional heteroatoms as ring members; and wherein the aliphatic portions of each of said R1
substituents is optionally substituted with from one to three members selected from the group
consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm,
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(=NH)NH2, -NHC(=NRm)NH2,
-NRmC(==NRm)N(Rm)2, -NRmC(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(=NRm)N(Rm)2,
-NHC(==NH)N(Rm)2, -NHC(=NH)NH(Rm), -C(=NH)NH2, -C(=NRm)NH2, -C(=NRm)N(Rm)2,
-C(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(O)NHRm, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm,
-NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2) -NRmS(O)NH2 and
-NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0011] The symbols R2a, R2c and R2d in formulae Ia and Ib are each substituents
independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano, aryl,
heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2Rc, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)3Rc, -Rc,
-C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV,
-X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRc, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2Rc, -X2CONRcRd,
-X2C(O)Rc, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Re, -X2NRcC(O)NRcRd,
-X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C{NH2)=NRc, -X2NH-C{NHRc)=NH, -
X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -XzNRcS(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3, -ORc, -SRc, -NRdC(O)Rc, -
NRdC(O)2Re, -X2S(O)3RC, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd,
-NRd-X2CO2Rc, -NRc-C(O)NRcRd, -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRcC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRe,
-NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -NRcC(NHRc)=NH, -NRcC(NH2)=NRc, -NH-C(NHRc)=NRc, -NH-
C(NRcRc)=NH, NRcS(O)2Rc, -NRcC(S)NRcRd, -X2NRcC(S)NRcRd, -X2OC(O)RC, -O-
X2CONRcRd, -OC(O)RC, -NRcRd, -NRd-X2ORc and -NRd-X2NRcRd.
[0012] Within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is C1-4 alkylene and each Rc and Rd is
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, and C3-6 cycloalkyl.
Optionally, Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the
nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms
as ring members. The symbol Rc is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8
4

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each
of Rc, Rd and Rc is optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORn, -OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn,
-S(O)2Rn, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn, -S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)2Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2, -C(O)Rn, -NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn, -NRnC(O)N(Rn)2) -NHC(O)N(Rn)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRn, -N(Rn)2, -NRnS(O)NH2
and -NRnS(O)2NHRn, wherein each Rn is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl; and
wherein V is independently selected from the group consisting of -Rc, -CN, -CO2Re and
-NO2.
[0013] Each of ring vertices a, b, c and d in formulae la and Ib is independently selected
from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N. The symbol R3a in
formulae la and Ib is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen,
-ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRE, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2> -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg,
-NRgC(O)Rf, -NHgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-
C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -C(=NRf)NRgRh, -S(O)3Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -S(O)3Rh,
-NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfR8, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg,
-X3SO3Rf, -X3C(=NRf)NRgRh, -X3ORf, -X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfRg, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X3NO2, -
X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRg, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3OC(O)NRfRg, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)2Rh,
-X3NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)NH, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -
X3NH-C(NHRh)=NH3 -X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Y,-X3Y,
-X3N3, -C(O)NRfS(O)Rh, -P=O(ORf)(ORg), -X3C(O)NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3C(O)NRfS(O)Rh and
-X3P=O(ORf)(ORg). The symbol Y is a five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or
heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected
from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf,
-CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -
X3NRfRe, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg; and wherein each X3 is independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4 alkenylene and C2-4 alkynylene; each
Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl,
C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, or when
attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the nitrogen atom to form a five or
six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms as ring members; and each Rh
is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
5

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl,
wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally further substituted with
from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°,
-OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2,
-NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°,
-NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2) -NHR°, -N(R°)2) -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6
alkyl.
[0014] In addition to the compounds provided herein, the present invention further provides
pharmaceutical compositions containing one or more of these compounds, as well as methods
for the use of these compounds in therapeutic methods, primarily to treat diseases associated
with CCR1 signaling activity.
BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF THE DRAWINGS
[0015] NONE
DETAILED DESCRIPTION OF THE INVENTION
I. Abbreviation and Definitions
[0016] The term "alkyl", by itself or as part of another substituent, means, unless otherwise
stated, a straight or branched chain hydrocarbon radical, having the number of carbon atoms
designated (i.e. C1-8 means one to eight carbons). Examples of alkyl groups include methyl,
ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, t-butyl, isobutyl, sec-butyl, n-pentyl, n-hexyl, n-heptyl, n-
octyl, and the like. The term "alkenyl" refers to an unsaturated alkyl group having one or
more double bonds. Similarly, the term "alkynyl" refers to an unsaturated alkyl group having
one or more triple bonds. Examples of such unsaturated alkyl groups include vinyl, 2-
propenyl, crotyl, 2-isopentenyl, 2-(butadienyl), 2,4-pentadienyl, 3-(1,4-pentadienyl), ethynyl,
1- and 3-propynyl, 3-butynyl, and the higher homologs and isomers. The term "cycloalkyl"
refers to hydrocarbon rings having the indicated number of ring atoms (e.g., C3-6cycloalkyl)
and being fully saturated or having no more than one double bond between ring vertices.
"Cycloalkyl" is also meant to refer to bicyclic and polycyclic hydrocarbon rings such as, for
example, bicyclo[2.2.1]heptane, bicyclo[2.2.2]octane, etc. The term "heterocycloalkyl"
6

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
refers to a cycloalkyl group that contain from one to five heteroatoms selected from N, O, and
S, wherein the nitrogen and sulfur atoms are optionally oxidized, and the nitrogen atom(s) are
optionally quaternized. The heterocycloalkyl may be a monocyclic, a bicyclic or a polycylic
ring system. Non limiting examples of heterocycloalkyl groups include pyrrolidine,
piperidinyl, imidazolidine, pyrazolidine, butyrolactam, valerolactam, imidazolidinone,
hydantoin, dioxolane, phthalimide, piperidine, 1,4-dioxane, morpholine, thiomorpholine,
thiomorpholine-S-oxide, thiomorpholine-S,S-oxide, piperazine, pyran, pyridone, 3-pyrroline,
thiopyran, pyrone, tetrahydrofuran, tetrahydrothiophene, quinuclidine, and the like. - A
heterocycloalkyl group can be attached to the remainder of the molecule through a ring
carbon or a heteroatom.
[0017] The term "alkylene" by itself or as part of another substituent means a divalent
radical derived from an alkane, as exemplified by -CH2CH2CH2CH2-. Typically, an alkyl (or
alkylene) group will have from 1 to 24 carbon atoms, with those groups having 10 or fewer
carbon atoms being preferred in the present invention. A "lower alkyl" or "lower alkylene" is
a shorter chain alkyl or alkylene group, generally having four or fewer carbon atoms.
Similarly, "alkenylene" and "alkynylene" refer to the unsaturated forms of "alkylene" having
double or triple bonds, respectively.
[0018] The terms "alkoxy," "alkylamino" and "alkylthio" (or thioalkoxy) are used in their
conventional sense, and refer to those alkyl groups attached to the remainder of the molecule
via an oxygen atom, an amino group, or a sulfur atom, respectively. Additionally, for
dialkylamino groups, the alkyl portions can be the same or different and can also be
combined to form a 3-7 membered ring with the nitrogen atom to which each is attached.
Accordingly, a group represented as -NRaRb is meant to include piperidinyl, pyrrolidinyl,
morpholinyl, azetidinyl and the like.
[0019] The terms "halo" or "halogen," by themselves or as part of another substituent,
mean, unless otherwise stated, a fluorine, chlorine, bromine, or iodine atom. Additionally,
terms such as "haloalkyl," are meant to include monohaloalkyl and polyhaloalkyl. For
example, the term "C1-4 haloalkyl" is mean to include trifluoromethyl, 2,2,2-trifluoroethyl, 4-
chlorobutyl, 3-bromopropyl, and the like.
[0020] The term "aryl" means, unless otherwise stated, a polyunsaturated, typically
aromatic, hydrocarbon group which can be a single ring or multiple rings (up to three rings)
which are fused together or linked covalently. The term "heteroaryl" refers to aryl groups (or
7

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
rings) that contain from one to five heteroatoms selected from N, O, and S, wherein the
nitrogen and sulfur atoms are optionally oxidized, and the nitrogen atom(s) are optionally
quaternized. A heteroaryl group can be attached to the remainder of the molecule through a
heteroatom. Non-limiting examples of aryl groups include phenyl, naphthyl and biphenyl,
while non-limiting examples of heteroaryl groups include pyridyl, pyridazinyl, pyrazinyl,
pyrimindinyl, triazinyl, quinolinyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl, cinnolinyl, phthalaziniyl,
benzotriazinyl, purinyl, benzimidazolyl, benzopyrazolyl, benzotriazolyl, benzisoxazolyl,
isobenzofuryl, isoindolyl, indolizinyl, benzotriazinyl, thienopyridinyl, thienopyrimidinyl,
pyrazolopyrimidinyl, imidazopyridines, benzothiaxolyl, benzofuranyl, benzothienyl, indolyl,
quinolyl, isoquinolyl, isothiazolyl, pyrazolyl, indazolyl, pteridinyl, imidazolyl, triazolyl,
tetrazolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, thiadiazolyl, pyrrolyl, thiazolyl, furyl, thienyl and the like.
Substituents for each of the above noted aryl and heteroaryl ring systems are selected from
the group of acceptable substituents described below.
[0021] For brevity, the term "aryl" when used in combination with other terms (e.g.,
aryloxy, arylthioxy, arylalkyl) includes both aryl and heteroaryl rings as defined above.
Thus, the term "arylalkyl" is meant to include those radicals in which an aryl group is
attached to an alkyl group (e.g., benzyl, phenethyl, pyridylmethyl and the like).
[0022] The above terms (e.g., "alkyl," "aryl" and "heteroaryl"), in some embodiments, will
include both substituted and unsubstituted forms of the indicated radical. Preferred
substituents for each type of radical are provided below. For brevity, the terms aryl and
heteroaryl will refer to substituted or unsubstituted versions as provided below, while the
term "alkyl" and related aliphatic radicals is meant to refer to unsubstituted version, unless
indicated to be substituted.
[0023] Substituents for the alkyl radicals (including those groups often referred to as
alkylene, alkenyl, alkynyl and cycloalkyl) can be a variety of groups selected from: -halogen,
-OR', -NR'R", -SR', -SiR'R"R"' -OC(O)R', -C(O)R', -CO2R', -CONR'R", -OC(O)NR'R",
-NR"C(O)R', -NR'-C(O)NR"R"', -NR"C(O)2R', -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NR'C(NH2)=NH, -NH-
C(NH2)=NR', -S(O)R', -S(O)2R', -S(O)2NR'R", -NR'S(O)2R", -CN and -NO2 in a number
ranging from zero to (2 m'+1), where m' is the total number of carbon atoms in such radical.
R', R" and R'" each independently refer to hydrogen, unsubstituted C1-8 alkyl, unsubstituted
heteroalkyl, unsubstituted aryl, aryl substituted with 1-3 halogens, unsubstituted C1-8 alkyl,
C1-8 alkoxy or C1-8 thioalkoxy groups, or unsubstituted aryl-C1-4 alkyl groups. When R' and
8

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
R" are attached to the same nitrogen atom, they can be combined with the nitrogen atom to
form a 3-, 4-, 5-, 6-, or 7-membered ring. For example, -NR'R" is meant to include 1-
pyrrolidinyl and 4-morpholinyl.
[0024] Similarly, substituents for the aryl and heteroaryl groups are varied and are
generally selected from: -halogen, -OR', -OC(O)R', -NR'R", -SR', -R', -CN, -NO2, -CO2R',
-CONR'R", -C(O)R', -OC(O)NR'R", -NR"C(O)R', -NR"C(O)2R', -NR'-C(O)NR"R"',
-NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NR'C(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)==NR', -S(O)R', -S(O)2R', -S(O)2NR'R",
-NR'S(O)2R", -N3, perfluoro(C1-C4)alkoxy, and perfiuoro(C1-C4)alkyl, in a number ranging
from zero to the total number of open valences on the aromatic ring system; and where R', R"
and R'" are independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl,
C2-8 alkynyl, unsubstituted aryl and heteroaryl, (unsubstituted aryl)-C1-4 alkyl, and
unsubstituted aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl. Other suitable substituents include each of the above aryl
substituents attached to a ring atom by an alkylene tether of from 1-4 carbon atoms.
[0025] Two of the substituents on adjacent atoms of the aryl or heteroaryl ring may
optionally be replaced with a substituent of the formula -T-C(O)-(CH2)q-U-, wherein T and U
are independently -NH-, -O-, -CH2- or a single bond, and q is an integer of from 0 to 2.
Alternatively, two of the substituents on adjacent atoms of the aryl or heteroaryl ring may
optionally be replaced with a substituent of the formula -A-(CH2)r-B-, wherein A and B are
independently -CH2-, -O-, -NH-, -S-, -S(O)-, -S(O)2-, -S(O)2NR'- or a single bond, and r is an
integer of from 1 to 3. One of the single bonds of the new ring so formed may optionally be
replaced with a double bond. Alternatively, two of the substituents on adjacent atoms of the
aryl or heteroaryl ring may optionally be replaced with a substituent of the formula -(CH2)S-
X-(CH2)r, where s and t are independently integers of from 0 to 3, and X is -O-, -NR'-, -S-, -
S(O)-, -S(O)2-, or -S(O)2NR'-. The substituent R' in -NR'- and -S(O)2NR'- is selected from
hydrogen or unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0026] As used herein, the term "heteroatom" is meant to include oxygen (O), nitrogen (N),
sulfur (S) and silicon (Si).
[0027] The term "pharmaceutically acceptable salts" is meant to include salts of the active
compounds which are prepared with relatively nontoxic acids or bases, depending on the
particular substituents found on the compounds described herein. When compounds of the
present invention contain relatively acidic functionalities, base addition salts can be obtained
by contacting the neutral form of such compounds with a sufficient amount of the desired
9

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
base, either neat or in a suitable inert solvent. Examples of salts derived from
pharmaceutically-acceptable inorganic bases include aluminum, ammonium, calcium, copper,
ferric, ferrous, lithium, magnesium, manganic, manganous, potassium, sodium, zinc and the
like. Salts derived from pharmaceutically-acceptable organic bases include salts of primary,
secondary and tertiary amines, including substituted amines, cyclic amines, naturally-
occuring amines and the like, such as arginine, betaine, caffeine, choline, N,N'-
dibenzylethylenediamine, diethylamine, 2-diethylaminoethanol, 2-dimethylaminoethanol,
ethanolamine, ethylenediamine, N-ethylmorpholine, N-ethylpiperidine, glucamine,
glucosamine, histidine, hydrabamine, isopropylamine, lysine, methylglucamine, morpholine,
piperazine, piperadine, polyamine resins, procaine, purines, theobromine, triethylamine,
trimethylamine, tripropylamine, tromethamine and the like. When compounds of the present
invention contain relatively basic functionalities, acid addition salts can be obtained by
contacting the neutral form of such compounds with a sufficient amount of the desired acid,
either neat or in a suitable inert solvent. Examples of pharmaceutically acceptable acid
addition salts include those derived from inorganic acids like hydrochloric, hydrobromic,
nitric, carbonic, monohydrogencarbonic, phosphoric, monohydrogenphosphoric,
dihydrogenphosphoric, sulfuric, monohydrogensulfuric, hydriodic, or phosphorous acids and
the like, as well as the salts derived from relatively nontoxic organic acids like acetic,
propionic, isobutyric, malonic, benzoic, succinic, suberic, fumaric, mandelic, phthalic,
benzenesulfonic, p-tolylsulfonic, citric, tartaric, methanesulfonic, and the like. Also included
are salts of amino acids such as arginate and the like, and salts of organic acids like
glucuronic or galactunoric acids and the like (see, for example, Berge, S.M., et al,
"Pharmaceutical Salts", Journal of Pharmaceutical Science, 1977, 66, 1-19). Certain specific
compounds of the present invention contain both basic and acidic functionalities that allow
the compounds to be converted into either base or acid addition salts.
[0028] The neutral forms of the compounds may be regenerated by contacting the salt with
a base or acid and isolating the parent compound in the conventional manner. The parent
form of the compound differs from the various salt forms in certain physical properties, such
as solubility in polar solvents, but otherwise the salts are equivalent to the parent form of the
compound for the purposes of the present invention.
[0029] In addition to salt forms, the present invention provides compounds which are in a
prodrug form. Prodrugs of the compounds described herein are those compounds that readily
undergo chemical changes under physiological conditions to provide the compounds of the
10

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
present invention. Additionally, prodrugs can be converted to the compounds of the present
invention by chemical or biochemical methods in an ex vivo environment. For example,
prodrugs can be slowly converted to the compounds of the present invention when placed in a
transdermal patch reservoir with a suitable enzyme or chemical reagent.
[0030] Certain compounds of the present invention can exist in unsolvated forms as well as
solvated forms, including hydrated forms. In general, the solvated forms are equivalent to
unsolvated forms and are intended to be encompassed within the scope of the present
invention. Certain compounds of the present invention may exist in multiple crystalline or
amorphous forms. In general, all physical forms are equivalent for the uses contemplated by
the present invention and are intended to be within the scope of the present invention.
[0031] Certain compounds of the present invention possess asymmetric carbon atoms
(optical centers) or double bonds; the racemates, diastereomers, geometric isomers,
regioisomers and individual isomers (e.g., separate enantiomers) are all intended to be
encompassed within the scope of the present invention. The compounds of the present
invention may also contain unnatural proportions of atomic isotopes at one or more of the
atoms that constitute such compounds. For example, the compounds may be radiolabeled
with radioactive isotopes, such as for example tritium (3H), iodine-125 (125I) or carbon-14
(14C). All isotopic variations of the compounds of the present invention, whether radioactive
or not, are intended to be encompassed within the scope of the present invention.
II. General
[0032] The present invention derives from the discovery that compounds of formula Ia or
Ib (as well as the subgeneric formulae Ia1-4 and Ib1-4 ) act as potent antagonists of the CCR1
receptor. The compounds have in vivo anti-inflammatory activity. Accordingly, the
compounds provided herein are useful in pharmaceutical compositions, methods for the
treatment of CCR1 -mediated diseases, and as controls in assays for the identification of
competitive CCR1 antagonists.
III. Compounds
[0033] In one aspect, the present invention provides compounds having a formula selected
from the group consisting of:
11

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
or a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, hydrate or N-oxide thereof. In the formulae above, the
subscript m is an integer of from 0 to 4. In certain embodiments, in formulae Ia and Ib the
subscript m is an integer from 0 to 2. In yet another embodiment, the subscript m in formulae
Ia and Ib is an integer of from 0 to 1.
[0034] The symbol R1 in formulae Ia and Ib is a substituent independently selected from
the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -S(O)3Ra,
-X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra, -X1S(O)Ra, -X1ORa -CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb, -X1NRaCORb,
-X1CONRaRb, X1S(O)2NRaRb, X1S(O)2Ra, -ORa, -NRaRb, -NRaCORb5 -CONRaRb, .
-NRaS(O)2Rb, -S(O)2NRaRb, -S(O)2Ra, -X1CORa, X1CONRaRb, and -X1NRaS(O)2Rb. The
symbol X1 is C1-4 alkylene and each Ra and Rb substituent is independently selected from the
group consisting of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, or optionally Ra
and Rb when attached to the same nitrogen atom are combined to form a 3- to 7-membered
ring having from 0-2 additional heteroatoms as ring members; and wherein the aliphatic
portions of each of said R1 substituents is optionally substituted with from one to three
members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2,
-SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm,
-NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm,
-NHC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(=NH)NH2, -NHC(=NRm)NH2,
-NRmC(=NRm)N(Rm)2, -NRmC(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(=NRm)N(Rm)2,
-NHC(=NH)N(Rm)2, -NHC(=NH)NH(Rm), -C(=NH)NH2, -C(=NRm)NH2, -C(=NRm)N(Rm)2,
-C(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(O)NHRm, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2) -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm,
-NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2) -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2) -NRmS(O)NH2 and
-NRmS(O)2NHRra, wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0035] In another embodiment, R1 in formulae Ia and Ib is a substituent independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra,
-X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra and -X1ORa, wherein the aliphatic portions of each of said R1
substituents is optionally substituted with from one to three members selected from the group
consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm,
12

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2) -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRm,-C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRm, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR"1, -N(Rm)2,
-NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-
6 alkyl.
[0036] In another embodiment, R1 in formulae Ia and Ib is a substituent independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, wherein
the aliphatic portions of each of said R1 substituents is optionally substituted with from one to
three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm,
-OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2,
-NHS(O)2Rm, -NRinS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm,
-NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRm,
-NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2) -NHRm, -N(Rm)2, -NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is
independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0037] In one embodiment of the invention, R1 in formulae Ia and Ib, if present, is selected
from the group consisting of -CO2H or C1-4 alkyl, optionally substituted with -OH, -ORm,
-S(O)2Rm, -CO2H and -CO2Rm. In another embodiment of the invention, R1 is methyl; and m
is 0-2.
[0038] The symbols R2a, R2c and R2d in formulae Ia and Ib are each substituents
independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano, aryl,
heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2Rc, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)3Rc, -Rc,
-C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV,
-X2N(V)C(RC)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC, -X2CONRcRd,
-X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Re, -X2NRcC(O)NRcRd,
-X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NReC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc, -X2NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -
X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -X2NRcS(O)2Re, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3, -ORC, -SRC, -NRdC(O)Rc, -
NRdC(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)3RC, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd,
-NRd-X2CO2Rc, -NRc-C(O)NRcRd, -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRcC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRc,
-NH-C(NHRc)NH, -NRcC(NHRc)=NH, -NRcC(NH2)=NRc, -NH-C(NHRc)=NRc, -NH-
13

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
C(NRcRc)=NH, NRcS(O)2Rc, -NRcC(S)NRcRd, -X2NRcC(S)NRcRd, -X2OC(O)RC, -O-
X2CONRcRd, -OC(O)Rc, -NRcRd, -NRd-X2ORc and -NRd-X2NRcRd.
[0039] In one embodiment, the symbol R2a in formulae Ia and Ib is independently selected
from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2Rc,
-CONRcRd, -C(O)RC, -S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -Rc, -C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRCV)=NV, -N(V)C(RC)=NV,
-X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2,
-X2CO2RC, -X2CONRcRd, -X2C(O)Rc, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc,
-X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc,
-X2NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -X2NRcS(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)2NRcRd and -X2N3.
[0040] In another embodiment, the R2a substitutent in formulae Ia and Ib is selected from
the group consisting of hydrogen, F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2RC, -CONRcRd, -CN, a 5- to 6-membered
heteroaryl, -X2NRcRd, -C(NORc)Rd. In yet another embodiment, R2a is hydrogen. In yet
another embodiment, the R2a substitutent in formulae la and Ib is selected from the group
consisting of F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2Me, -CONH2, CN, oxazolyl, -CH2NH2, -CH2NHMe,
-CH2NMe2 and -CH=N-OH. In yet another embodiment, in compounds having formulae Ia
and Ib, the R2a substituent is selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, F, Cl, Br and I.
[0041] In another embodiment, the symbols R2c and R2d in formulae Ia and Ib are each
substituents independently selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORC, -SRC,
-OC(O)Rc, -NRcRd, -Rc, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rc, -C(O)RC, -NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Re, -S(O)2Rc,
-S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc. In certain
aspects of this embodiment, R2c and R2d are each independently selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, halogen, F, Cl, Br, I and ORc.
[0042] Within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is C1-4 alkylene and each Rc and Rd is
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, and C3-6 cycloalkyl.
Optionally, Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the
nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms
as ring members. The symbol Rc is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each
of Rc, Rd and Re is optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORn, -OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn,
-S(O)2Rn, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn, -S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)2Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2, -C(O)Rn, -NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2,
14

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn, -NRnC(O)N(Rn)2, -NHC(O)N(Rn)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRn, -N(Rn)2, -NRnS(O)NH2
and -NRnS(O)2NHRn, wherein each Rn is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl; and
wherein V is independently selected from the group consisting of -Rc, -CN, -CO2Rc and
-NO2.
[0043] In a certain embodiment of a compound having formulae la and Ib, the subscript m
is 0 or 1; and the symbol R2a is hydrogen. In another embodiment, the subscript m is 0-1; and
R2a isForCl.
[0044] In another embodiment of the invention, R2c in formulae la and Ib is selected from
the group consisting of halogen, -CN, -NO2, -CO2RC, -CORc, -S(O)2Rc. In another
embodiments of the invention, the symbol R2c is selected from the group consisting of F, Cl,
Br, CN, NO2, -CO2CH3, -C(O)CH3 and -S(O)2CH3.
[0045] In yet another embodiment of the invention, the symbol R2d in formulae la and Ib is
selected from the group consisting of-SRC, -O-X2-ORC, -X2-ORC, -OC(O)RC, -NRcRd, -Rc and
-ORc. In another embodiment, R2d is selected from the group consisting of-SMe,
-OCH2OMe, -CH2OMe, -CH2OEt, methyl, ethyl, methoxy and ethoxy.
[0046] In formulae Ia and Ib, each of the ring vertices a, b, c and d is independently
selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N. In one
embodiment of the invention, the fused six membered ring having vertices a, b, c and d is a
fused pyridine ring or a fused pyrimidine ring. In yet another embodiment of the invention,
the fused six membered ring having vertices a, b, c and d is a fused pyrazine ring. In yet
another embodiment of the invention, the fused six membered ring having vertices a, b, c and
d is a fused pyridazine ring.
[0047] Turning to the R3a substituent in formulae Ia and Ib, at each occurence, the symbol
R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf,
-OC(O)Rf, -NRfRE, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg, -
NRgC(O)Rf, -NR8C(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfR8, -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-
C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -C(=NRf)NRgRh, -S(O)3Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -S(O)3Rh,
-NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg,
-X3SO3Rf, -X3C(=NRf)NRgRh, -X3ORf, -X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfRg, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X3NO2, -
X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRg, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3OC(O)NRfRg, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NREC(O)2Rh,
-X3NRf-C(O)NRfR8, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)=NH, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -
15

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
X3NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Y, -X3Y,
-X3N3, -C(O)NRfS(O)Rh, -P=O(ORf)(OR8), -X3C(O)NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3C(O)NRfS(O)Rh and
-X3P=O(ORf)(ORg). The symbol Y is a five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or
heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected
from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf,
-CONRfRE, -C(O)Rf, -NR8C(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -
X3NRfR8, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg, and wherein each X3 is independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4 alkenylene and C2-4 alkynylene; each
Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl,
C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, or when
attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the nitrogen atom to form a five or
six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms as ring members; and each Rh
is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl,
wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally further substituted with
from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°,
-OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2,
-NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°,
-NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2RD, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6
alkyl.
[0048] In one embodiment of formulae Ia and Ib, the symbol R3a, at each occurence, is
independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -
NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -
NR8C(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg,
-NRfS(O)2NRfRE, -X3ORf, -X3NRfR8, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRg, -X3C(O)Rf, -
X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)2Rh, -Y, -X3Y and -X3N3. The symbol Y is a five or six-
membered aryl, a five or six membered heteroaryl, or a three to eight membered
heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected
from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf,
-CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh and -S(O)2NRfR8. X3 is
independently C1-4 alkylene. The symbols Rf and Rg are independently selected from
16

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected
from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl. The aliphatic
portions of X3, Rf, R6 and Rh is optionally further substituted with from one to three members
selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°,
-S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2,
-CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 -
and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0049] In another embodiment of the invention, the symbol R3a of formulae la and Ib is a
member independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -OR, -
NRfRe, -Rh, -CN, and -Y, wherein Y is a five to six-membered aryl ring, a five to six-
membered heteroaryl ring, or a three to eight-membered heterocycloalkyl ring selected from
the group consisting of homopiperidinyl, morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl,
piperidinyl, azetidinyl, pyranyl, tetrahydrofuranyl, piperazinyl, phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl,
oxadiazolyl, oxazolyl and thiazolyl, optionally substituted with from one to three
substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -CN, wherein
each R and Re is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl and C3-6
cycloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-6 alkyl, C1-6
haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally
further substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of
-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2,
-S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(Ro)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°,
-C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(0)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°,
-NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and
-NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein Rc is unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0050] In another embodiment of the invention, the R3a groups in formulae Ia and Ib is
selected from the group consisting of-Y and -X -Y, wherein Y is selected from the group
consisting of homopiperidinyl, morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl, piperidinyl,
azetidinyl, pyranyl, tetrahydrofuranyl, piperazinyl, phenyl, thienyl, furanyl, pyridyl,
pyrimidinyl, pyrazinyl, pyrrolyl, pyridizinyl, pyrazolyl, imidazolyl, thiazolyl, oxazolyl,
isoxazolyl, isothiazolyl, triazolyl, tetrazolyl and oxadiazolyl, which is optionally substituted
17

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
with from one to three substituents independently selected from the group consisting of
halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -CORf, -CO2Rf; -CONRfRg, -NO2, -Rh and -CN, wherein Rf and Rg
are each independently selected from the group consisting of H, C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl and
C1-8 haloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl,
C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8 haloalkyl. In certain embodiments of the invention, the symbol Y is
selected from the group consisting of phenyl, pyridyl, oxazolyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl, and
thiazolyl, each of which is optionally substituted with from one to three substituents
independently selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -CORf, -CO2Rf;
-CONRfRg, -NO2, -Rh and -CN, wherein Rf and Rg are each independently selected from the
group consisting of H, C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8 haloalkyl, and each Rh is
independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8
haloalkyl. Within this embodiment, in certain aspects of the invention, m is an integer from
0-2. In other aspect, m is an integer from 0-1.
[0051] In yet another embodiment of the invention, the R3a substituent in formulae Ia and
Ib is selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-4 alkyl and C1-4 haloalkyl,
wherein the aliphatic portions are optionally substituted with from one to three members
selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°,
-S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2,
-CO2H, -CO2R°5 -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2
and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl. In
certain instances of this embodiment, m is 0 or 1; R2a is preferably hydrogen; and additionally
in other instances, R2c is preferably selected from the group consisting of F, Cl, Br, CN, NO2,
-CO2CH3, -C(O)CH3 and -S(O)2CH3.
[0052] In yet another embodiment, the R3a substituent in formulae Ia and Ib is halogen, C1-4
alkyl or C1-4 haloalkyl.
[0053] In yet another embodiment, the R3a moiety on the pyrazole ring in formulae Ia and
Ib is hydrogen, halogen, chloro, fluoro, bromo, oxazolyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl,
thiazolyl, C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl or C1-8 haloalkyl or cyano.
[0054] In a certain embodiment of the invention, in the compounds having formulae Ia and
Ib, R3a is a member independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen,
18

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-ORf, -NRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -C(O)ORf, -S(O)Rf, -S(O)2Rf, -S(O)3Rf, -S(O)3Rh, -X3C(O)2Rf,
X3S(O)3Rf, -S(O)2NRfRg5 -X3S(O)2NRfR6, -Rh, -CN, X3NRfRg, NRgC(O)Rf, X3N3 and Y.
The symbol Y is a five to six-mernbered aryl, a five or six-membered heteroaryl ring or a
three to eight-membered heterocycloalkyl ring selected from the group consisting of
homopiperidinyl, morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl, piperidinyl, azetidinyl, pyranyl,
tetrahydrofuranyl, piperazinzyl, phenyl, pyridyl, oxazolyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl,
imidazolyl, pyrazolyl, triazolyl and thiazolyl, optionally substituted with from one to three
substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf,-NRfRg, -Rh, -CN. Each Rf
and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl,
and each Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl
and C3-6 cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally further
substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -OR0,
-OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°,
-S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, .
-NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6
alkyl.
[0055] In a certain embodiment of the invention, in the compounds having formulae Ia and
Ib, R3a is a member independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen,
-ORf, -NRfRe, -C(O)Rf, -C(O)ORf, -S(O)Rf, -S(O)2Rf, -S(O)2NRfRg, -Rh, -CN, X3NRfRg,
NRgC(O)Rf, X3N3 and -Y, wherein Y is a five to six-membered aryl, a five or six-membered
heteroaryl ring or a three to eight-membered heterocycloalkyl ring selected from the group
consisting of homopiperidinyl, morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl, piperidinyl,
azetidinyl, pyranyl, tetrahydrofiiranyl, piperazinzyl, phenyl, pyridyl, oxazolyl, pyrimidinyl,
oxadiazolyl and thiazolyl, optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected
from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRe, -Rh, -CN, wherein each Rf and Rg is
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, and each
Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl and C3-6
cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally further substituted
with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo,
-OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°,
-S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°,
19

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2) -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR0C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2Ro, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6
alkyl. The subcript m may be from 0 to 2; or alternatively from 0-1.
[0056] In another embodiment of the invention, in the compounds having formulae Ia or Ib,
the symbol R3a moiety on the pyrazole ring is hydrogen, halogen, chloro, fluoro, bromo,
oxazolyl, pyridyl,oxadiazolyl thiazolyl, -Rh or cyano; and optionally the symbol R1, when
present, is selected from the group consisting of-CO2H or C1-4 alkyl, optionally substituted
with -OH, -ORm, -S(O)2Rm, -CO2H and -CO2Rm. In yet another embodiment, R1, when
present, is hydrogen or C1-6 alkyl. m is an integer from 0-2.
[0057] In another embodiment of the invention, in compounds of formulae Ia and Ib, the
R3a substituted is selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, NRfR8, -Rh,
-Y, -CN, X3N3, -SO2Rh, X3NRfRg, X3Y, -S(O)3Rf, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg, -NO2, and
-NRgC(O)Rf, wherein Y is an optionally substituted group selected from the group consisting
of phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, thiazolyl, oxadiazolyl and morpholinyl, and Rh is
an optionally substituted group selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl
and C3-8 cycloalkyl, and Rf and Rg are each independently an optionally substituted group
selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-8 cycloalkyl.
In certain aspects of this embodiment, the R3a substituent is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, fluoro, chloro, bromo, iodo, amino, -CH3, oxazolyl, thiazolyl,
pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, morpholinyl, oxdiazolyl, -NHC(O)CH3, -CN, CH2N3, CH2SO3H, NO2,
-(C=NOH)NH2, -S(O)2CH3 and CH2NH2.
[0058] In yet another embodiment of the invention, in the compounds having formulae Ia or
Ib, the subscript m is 0 or 1; R2a is hydrogen, halogen or -CN ; R2c is selected from the group
consisting of F, CI, Br, CN, NO2, -CO2CH3, -C(O)CH3 and -S(O)2CH3; R2d is selected from
the group consisting of -SRc, -O-X2-ORc, -X2-ORc, -Rc and -ORc; and R3a substituents is
selected from the group consisting of halogen, C1-4 alkyl and C1-4 haloalkyl, wherein the
aliphatic portions of R3a are optionally substituted with from one to three members selected
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°,
-S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2,
20

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2
and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0059] In one preferred embodiment, in the compounds of the invention having the formula
Ib, when R2a is H, R2c is chloro, R2d is methoxy, m is 0, a is N, c is N, and b and d are CH,
then R3a is other than hydrogen, methyl, unsubstituted 2-pyridyl, unsubstituted 2-pyrimidinyl
or unsubstituted 2-oxazolyl.
[0060] In one specific embodiment, the present invention provides compounds having
formula Ia and Ib wherein the subscript m is an integer of from 0 to 4. The symbol R1 is a
substituent independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra and -X1ORa, -CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb,
-X1NRaCORb, -X1CONRaRb, X1S(O)2NRaRb and X1S(O)2Ra, wherein X1 is CM alkylene and
each Ra and Rb is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl,
C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl; and wherein the aliphatic portions of each of said R1
substituents is optionally substituted with from one to three members selected from the group
consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm,
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRin, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2,
-NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-
6 alkyl. The symbols R2a, R2c and R2d are each substituents independently selected from the
group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2R°, -CONR°Rd,
-C(O)RC, -S(O)Re, -S(O)2Re, -Re, -C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRCV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV,
-X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2,
-X2CO2RC, -X2CONRcRd; -X2C(O)RC: -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc,
-X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRe,
-X2NH-C(NHRC)=NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Re, -X2NRcS(O)2Re, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3,
-ORC, -SRC, -NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -
X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc. Within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is C1-4
alkylene and each Rc and Rd is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8
haloalkyl, and C3-6 cycloalkyl. Optionally, Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen
atom can be combined with the nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having
from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms as ring members. The symbol Rc is independently
21

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl,
C2-8 alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each of Rc, Rd and Rc is optionally further substituted
with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORn,
-OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn, -S(O)2Rn, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn,
-S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)2Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2) -C(O)Rn,
-NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn,
-NRnC(O)N(Rn)2) -NHC(O)N(Rn)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHRn, -N(Rn)2, -NRnS(O)NH2 and -NRnS(O)2NHRn, wherein each Rn is
independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl; and wherein V is independently selected from the
group consisting of -Rc, -CN, -CO2Rc and -NO2. Each of ring vertices a, b, c and d in
formulae Ia and Ib is independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said
ring vertices is N. The symbol R3a in formulae Ia and Ib is independently selected from the
group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -
CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg,
-NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -S(O)Rh, -
S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -X3ORf,
-X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfR8, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X*NO2, -X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRe, -X3C(O)Rf,
-X3OC(O)NRfRg, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NR£C(O)2Rh, -X3NRf-C(O)NRfRg,
-X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)=NH, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -X3NH-C(NHRh)==NH, -
X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Y, -X3Yand -X3N3. The symbol Y
is a five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with
from one to three substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRe,
-Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NQ2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRE, -C(O)Rf, -NRBC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -
NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -X3NRfRg, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg, and
wherein each X3 is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4
alkenylene and C2-4 alkkynylene; each Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-4
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4
alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, or when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined
with the nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional
heteroatoms as ring members; and each Rh is independently selected from the group
consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl,
heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg
and Rh are optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected from the
group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°,-S(O)2R°,
22

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-SO2NH2) -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°,
-C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°,
-NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and
-NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0061] In another specific embodiment, in compounds having formula la and Ib, R1 is
independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl,
-CO2Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra, -X1ORa, -CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb, -X1NRaCORb,
-X1CONRaRb, X1S(O)2NRaRb and X1S(O)2Ra, wherein X1 is C1-4 alkylene and each Ra and Rb
is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and
C3-6 cycloalkyl. The aliphatic portions of each of said R1 substituents is optionally
substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm,
-OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm,
-S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2,
-C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rra, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2) -NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm,
-NHC(O)NHRm, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm,
-NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2, -NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm,
wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl. The substituents R2a, R2c and
R2d are each independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano,
heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2RC, -CONRcRd, -C(O)RC, -S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -Rc, -C(NORc)Rd,
-C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -
X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC, -X2CONRcRd, -X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd,
-X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Re, -X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH,
-X2NReC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRe, -X2NH-C(NHRe)=NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -
X2NRcS(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3> -ORC, -SRC, -Rc, -NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Rc, -
S(O)2Re, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc; in
which within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is CM alkylene and each Rc and Rd is
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, or
optionally, Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the
nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms
as ring members; and each Re is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each
of Rc, Rd and Re is optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected
23

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORn, -OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn,
-S(O)2Rn, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn, -S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2, -C(O)Rn, -NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn, -NRnC(O)N(Rn)2, -NHC(O)N(Rn)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR", -N(Rn)2) -NRnS(O)NH2
and -NR'^O^NHR". Each Rn is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl; and wherein V is
independently selected from the group consisting of -Rc, -CN, -CO2Rc and -NO2. Each of
ring vertices a, b, c and d in formulae Ia and Ib is independently selected from N and C(R3a),
and from one to two of said ring vertices is N. The substituent R3a is independently selected
from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN,
-NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-
C(O)NRfRg -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -
S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -X3ORf,
-X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfRB, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X3NO2, -X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRg, -X3C(O)Rf,
-X3OC(O)NRfRg -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)2Rh, -X3NRf-C(O)NRfRg,
-X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)=NH, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -X3NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -
X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Y, -X3Yand -X3N3. The symbol Y
is a five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with
from one to three substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -OR, -NRfRg,
-Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -
NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -X3NRfR8, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg, and
wherein each X3 is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4
alkenylene and C2-4 alkynylene and each R and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen,
C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4
alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, or when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined
with the nitrogen atom to form a five or six-mernbered ring having from 0 to 2 additional
heteroatoms as ring members, and each Rh is independently selected from the group
consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl,
heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, R6
and Rh are optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected from the
group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°,
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°,
-C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°,
24

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and
-NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0062] In another specific embodiment of the invention, in compounds having formula Ia
or Ib, each R1 is a substituent independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl,
C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra and -X1ORa, wherein the
aliphatic portions of each of said R1 substiruents is optionally substituted with from one to
three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm,
-OC(O)N(Rm)2) -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2,
-NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm,
-NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NH2) -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRm,
-NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2, -NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is
independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl. The R2a substituent is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, halogen, cyano, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2RC, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -
S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -Rc, -C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd,
-X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(RC)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRc, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC,
-X2CONRcRd, -X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc,
-X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc,
-X2NH-C(NHRc)NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -X2NRcS(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)2NRcRd and -X2N3.
The R2c and R2d substiruents are each independently selected from the group consisting of
halogen, -ORC, -SRC, -Rc, -CN, -NO2, -CO2RC, -C(O)RC, -NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Rc, -
S(O)2Rc, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORc, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc.
Each R3a substituent is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen,
halogen, -ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf,
-OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRc, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2RV
NRfS(O)2Rb, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -X3NRfRg, -X3SRf, -X3CN,
-C(C=NORf)NRfRg, X3SO3Rf, -X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRg, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -
X3NRgC(O)2Rh, -Y, -X3Y, -X3N3, wherein Y is selected from the group consisting of a five or -
six-membered aryl ring, a five or six-membered heteroaryl ring and three to eight membered
heterocycloalkyl ring, wherein said Y group is optionally substituted with from one to three
substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -
NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRE, -C(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh) -NRfS(O)2Rh and
-S(O)2NRfRg, and wherein each X3 is independently C1-4 alkylene, and each Rf and Rg is
25

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, and each
Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6
cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg and Rh is optionally further substituted
with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -OR0,
-OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°,
-S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°,
-NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is
independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
[0063] In another embodiment of the invention, the compounds of the invention having
formula Ib is represented by formulae Ib1 and Ib2:

or an N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; the symbol R2 is selected from
-SRC, -O-X2-ORC, -X2-ORC, -Rc, -ORC and -NRdC(O)Rc, each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is
independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and
each R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-6 alkyl,
C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6 heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl,
pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl. In one embodiment, the ring
vertex a is N. In another embodiment, the ring vertex b is N. In another embodiment, the
ring vertex c is N. In another embodiment, the ring vertex d is N. In yet another
embodiment, the ring vertices a and c are each N; b is hydrogen; and d is C(R3a), wherein R3a
on ring vertex d is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b is
C(R3a) wherein R3a on ring vertex b is other than hydrogen; and c and d are each hydrogen.
In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and c are each hydrogen; and d is C(R3a),
wherein R3a on ring vertex d is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex
a is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex a is other than hydrogen; b is N; c and d are each
hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and d are each hydrogen; and c is
26

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
C(R3a); wherein R3a on ring vertex c is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring
vertices a and c are each N; b is hydrogen; and d is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex d is
other than hydrogen.
[0064] In yet another embodiment of the invention, the compounds of the invention having
formula Ib is represented by formulae Ib3 and Ib4:

or an N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is independently halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected
from -SRC, -O-X2-ORC, -X2-ORC, -Re, -ORC, -NRcRd, -NRcS(O)2Rc and -NRdC(O)Rc; R2a is
selected from the group consisting of F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2Me, -CONH2, CN, oxazolyl,
-CH2NH2, -CH2NHMe, -CH2NMe2 and -CH=N-OH; each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is
independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and
each R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C3-6 alkyl,
C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6 heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl,
pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl. In one embodiment the ring
vertex a is N. In another embodiment the ring vertex b is N. In another embodiment the ring
vertex c is N. In another embodiment the ring vertex d is N. In yet another embodiment, the
ring vertices a and c are each N; b is hydrogen; and d is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex d
is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b is C(R3a) wherein
R3a on ring vertex b is other than hydrogen; and c and d are each hydrogen. In another
embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and c are each hydrogen; and d is C(R3a), wherein R3a
on ring vertex d is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a),
wherein R3a on ring vertex a is other than hydrogen; b is N; c and d are each hydrogen. In
another embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and d are each hydrogen; and c is C(R3a);
wherein R3a on ring vertex c is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertices
a and c are each N; b is hydrogen; and d is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex d is other than
hydrogen.
27

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0065] In yet another embodiment, the compounds of the invention having formula Ia is
represented by formulae Ia1 or Ia2:

or an N-oxide thereof; wherein the symbol R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; the symbol R2d is
selected from -SRC, -O-X2-ORC, -X2-ORC, -Rc, -ORC and -NRdC(O)Rc; each of ring vertices a,
b, c and d is independently selected from N and C(R a), and from one to two of said ring
vertices is N; and each R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen,
halogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6 heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino,
phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxazoylyl, oxadiazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl. In one
embodiment, the ring vertex d is N. In another embodiment the ring vertex b is N. In another
embodiment the ring vertex c is N. In another embodiment the ring vertex d is N. In another
embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and d are each hydrogen; and c is C(R3a) wherein R3a is
other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a), wherein R a on ring
vertex a is other than hydrogen; b is N; and c and d are each hydrogen. In another
embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and c are each hydrogen; and d is C(R3a) wherein R3a
on ring vertex d is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a),
wherein R3a on ring vertex a is other than hydrogen; b and care each hydrogen; and d is N.
In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex a is other than
hydrogen; b and d are each N; and c is hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertices a
and b are each hydrogen; c is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex c is other than hydrogen; and
d is N.
[0066] In yet another embodiment, the compounds of the invention having formula la is
represented by formula Ia3 and Ia4:

28

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Ia3 Ia4
or an N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected from -SRC,
-O-X2-ORC, -X2-ORC, -Rc, -ORC and -NRdC(O)Rc; R2a is selected from the group consisting of
F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2Me, -CONH2, CN, oxazolyl, -CH2NH2, -CH2NHMe, and -CH2NMe2; each
of ring vertices a, b, c and d is independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to
two of said ring vertices is N; and each R3a is independently selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6
heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl,
isoxazolyl and thiazolyl. In one embodiment, the ring vertex a is N. In another embodiment
the ring vertex b is N. In another embodiment the ring vertex c is N. In another embodiment,
the ring vertex d is N. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a), wherein R3a on
ring vertex a is other than hydrogen; b is N; and c and d are each hydrogen. In another
embodiment, the ring vertex a is N; b and c are each hydrogen; and d is C(R3a) wherein R3a
on ring vertex d is other than hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a),
wherein R3a on ring vertex a is other than hydrogen; b and c are each hydrogen; and d is N.
In another embodiment, the ring vertex a is C(R3a), wherein R a on ring vertex a is other than
hydrogen; b and d are each N; and c is hydrogen. In another embodiment, the ring vertices a
and b are each hydrogen; c is C(R3a), wherein R3a on ring vertex c is other than hydrogen; and
d is N.
[0067] A family of specific compound of particular interest having formulae Ia and Ib
consists of compounds, pharmaceutically acceptable salts, hydrates or N-oxides thereof, as
set forth in Table 1.
Table 1
1. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridin-1-yl-
ethanone
2. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridin-2-yl-
ethanone
3. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-2-yl)-ethanone
4. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyrazin-1-yl-7-
oxide)-ethanone
29

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
5. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyrazin-1 -yl-7-
oxide)-ethanone
6. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl-ethanone.
7. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-ftuoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-2-yl-ethanone.
8. 2-(3-Amino-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-
2-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone.
9. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
bjpyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
10. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-methyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.
11.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl-
ethanone.
12. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-
ethanone.
13.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3 -
cjpyridin-1 -yl-ethanone.
14. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazm-1 -yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridin-2-yl-ethanone.
15.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-pyridin-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
bjpyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
16.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-thiazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
17. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
1-yl-ethanone.
18. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
2-yl-ethanone.
30

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
19. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
20. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
21.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-fluoro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone.
22. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-
yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
23. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-2-yl-
ethanone
24. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1 -yl-
ethanone
25. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
1-yl-ethanone
26. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-thiazol-2-
yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
27. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-£luoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2--(3-pyridin-2-
yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone
28. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
29. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-pip6razin-1 -yl]-2-(3-methyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone
30. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-thiazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone
31.1- {2-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-oxo-ethyl} -1H-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-3-carbonitrile
32. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-2-
oxide)-ethanone
31

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
33. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
bjpyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
34. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-2-yl)-ethanone
35. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-morpholin-4-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
36. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-melhyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridin-1 -yl-ethanone
37. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl-6-
oxide)-ethanone
38. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[4,3-
c]pyridin-2-yl)-ethanone
39. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
2-yl)-ethanone
40.1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yI]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
l-yl)-ethanone
41. 1-[4-(4-Choloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-methanesulfonyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
42. 2-(3-Azidomethyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-choloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
43. (l-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-1H-
pyrazolot3,4-b]pyridin-3-y2)-methanesulfonic acid
44. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3 -methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(5-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
45. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyrimidin-2-yl)-ethanone
46. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyrimidin-1 -yl)-ethanone
32

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
47. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-methoxy-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyrimidin-1 -yl)-ethanone
48. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-2-yl)-ethanone
49. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
50. 2-(6-Azido-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
51.2-(6-Amino-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
52.2-(7-Azido-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
53.2-(7-Amino-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-choloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
54. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-2-yl)-ethanone
55. 2-(5-Amino-3-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-
phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-ethanone
56.1-[4-(4-Chloro-3 -methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl] -2-(3 -methyl-5 -nitro-pyrazolo [3,4-
b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
57. 2-(3-Amino-6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-
phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-ethanone
58. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-
[ 1,2,4]oxadiazol-3 -yl-pyrazolo [3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
59. 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-N-hydroxy-1H-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carboxamidine
60. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-[1,2,4]oxadiazol-3-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
33

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
61. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-(5-methy1-[1,2,4]oxadiazol-
3-yl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl]-ethanone
62. N-( 1 -{2-[4-(4-Chloro-3-raethoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-1H-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-6-yl)-acetamide
63. 1 -[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-methanesulfonyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone
64. 2-(3-Aminomethyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-y])-1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-ethanone
65.1-[4-(4-Chloro-3 -methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-
1-yl)-ethanone
66. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-
pyrazolo [3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
67. 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-
pyrazolo [3,4-b]pyridin-1 -yl)-ethanone
[0068] Another family of specific compounds of particular interest having formulae Ia and
Ib consists of compounds, pharmaceutically acceptable salts, hydrates or N-oxides thereof as
set forth in Table 2.
Preparation of Compounds
[0069] As provided in the examples below, the compounds and intermediates of the present
invention can be prepared by one of skill in the art in a component assembly manner.
Schemes 1A - 1M illustrate a variety of methods for the preparation of a variety of
azaindazole-type derivatives. In each of these schemes, X is halogen; Nu is nucleophilic
group; the symbol within an aryl ring indicate the replacement of one to two carbon(s) of
said aryl ring vertex (vertices) with nitrogen atom(s); L is a ligand; and non-interferring
substituents are provided as -R, -R', -R' , and -R"'
Scheme 1A
[0070] Scheme 1A shows the synthesis of azaindazole derivatives from halo-pyridme-
carbaldehyde or ketone.
34

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

Scheme IB
[0071] Scheme IB shows the synthesis of azaindazole derivatives from halo-
cyanopyridines.

Scheme 1C
[0072] Scheme 1C shows the synthesis of azaindazole derivatives from amino-methyl-
pyridine.

Scheme ID
[0073] Scheme ID shows the reaction of azaindazole derivatives with an α-haloacetate or
α-haloacetamide.

Scheme IE
[0074] Scheme IE shows the reaction of azaindazole derivatives with an electrophilic
halogen source (X+).

Scheme IF
35

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

36

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

37

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
IV. Pharmaceutical Compositions
[0082] In addition to the compounds provided above, compositions for modulating CCR1
activity in humans and animals will typically contain a pharmaceutical earner or diluent.
[0083] The term "composition" as used herein is intended to encompass a product
comprising the specified ingredients in the specified amounts, as well as any product which
results, directly or indirectly, from combination of the specified ingredients in the specified
amounts. By "pharmaceutically acceptable" it is meant the carrier, diluent or excipient must
be compatible with the other ingredients of the formulation and not deleterious to the
recipient thereof.
[0084] The pharmaceutical compositions for the administration of the compounds of this
invention may conveniently be presented in unit dosage form and may be prepared by any of
the methods well known in the art of pharmacy and drug delivery. All methods include the
step of bringing the active ingredient into association with the carrier which constitutes one or
more accessory ingredients. In general, the pharmaceutical compositions are prepared by
uniformly and intimately bringing the active ingredient into association with a liquid carrier
or a finely divided solid carrier or both, and then, if necessary, shaping the product into the
desired formulation. In the pharmaceutical composition the active object compound is
included in an amount sufficient to produce the desired effect upon the process or condition
of diseases.
[0085] The pharmaceutical compositions containing the active ingredient may be in a form
suitable for oral use, for example, as tablets, troches, lozenges, aqueous or oily suspensions,
dispersible powders or granules, emulsions and self emulsifications as described in U.S.
Patent Application 2002-0012680, hard or soft capsules, syrups, elixirs, solutions, buccal
patch, oral gel chewing gum, chewable tablets, effervescent powder and effervescent tablets.
Compositions intended for oral use may be prepared according to any method known to the
art for the manufacture of pharmaceutical compositions and such compositions may contain
one or more agents selected from the group consisting of sweetening agents, flavoring agents,
coloring agents, antioxidants and preserving agents in order to provide pharmaceutically
elegant and palatable preparations. Tablets contain the active ingredient in admixture with
non-toxic pharmaceutically acceptable excipients which are suitable for the manufacture of
tablets. These excipients may be for example, inert diluents, such as cellulose, silicon
dioxide, aluminum oxide, calcium carbonate, sodium carbonate, glucose, mannitol, sorbitol,
38

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
lactose, calcium phosphate or sodium phosphate; granulating and disintegrating agents, for
example, corn starch, or alginic acid; binding agents, for example PVP, cellulose, PEG,
starch, gelatin or acacia, and lubricating agents, for example magnesium stearate, stearic acid
or talc. The tablets may be uncoated or they may be coated, enterically or otherwise, by
known techniques to delay disintegration and absorption in the gastrointestinal tract and
thereby provide a sustained action over a longer period. For example, a time delay material
such as glyceryl monostearate or glyceryl distearate may be employed. They may also be
coated by the techniques described in the U.S. Pat. Nos. 4,256,108; 4,166,452; and
4,265,874 to form osmotic therapeutic tablets for control release.
[0086] Formulations for oral use may also be presented as hard gelatin capsules wherein
the active ingredient is mixed with an inert solid diluent, for example, calcium carbonate,
calcium phosphate or kaolin, or as soft gelatin capsules wherein the active ingredient is
mixed with water or an oil medium, for example peanut oil, liquid paraffin, or olive oil.
Additionally, emulsions can be prepared with a non-water miscible ingredient such as oils
and stabilized with surfactants such as mono-diglycerides, PEG esters and the like.
[0087] Aqueous suspensions contain the active materials in admixture with excipients
suitable for the manufacture of aqueous suspensions. Such excipients are suspending agents,
for example sodium carboxymethylcellulose, methylcellulose, hydroxy-
propylmethylcellulose, sodium alginate, polyvinyl-pyrrolidone, gum tragacanth and gum
acacia; dispersing or wetting agents may be a naturally-occurring phosphatide, for example
lecithin, or condensation products of an alkylene oxide with fatty acids, for example polyoxy-
ethylene stearate, or condensation products of ethylene oxide with long chain aliphatic
alcohols, for example heptadecaethyleneoxycetartol, or condensation products of ethylene
oxide with partial esters derived from fatty acids and a hexitol such as polyoxyethylene
sorbitol monooleate. or condensation products of ethylene oxide with partial esters derived
from fatty acids and hexitol anhydrides, for example polyethylene sorbitan monooleate. The
aqueous suspensions may also contain one or.more preservatives, for example ethyl, or n-
propyl, p-hydroxybenzoate, one or more coloring agents, one or more flavoring agents, and
one or more sweetening agents, such as sucrose or saccharin.
[0088] Oily suspensions may be formulated by suspending the active ingredient in a
vegetable oil, for example aracbis oil, olive oil, sesame oil or coconut oil, or in a mineral oil
such as liquid paraffin. The oily suspensions may contain a thickening agent, for example
39

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
beeswax, hard paraffin or cetyl alcohol. Sweetening agents such as those set forth above, and
flavoring agents may be added to provide a palatable oral preparation. These compositions
may be preserved by the addition of an anti-oxidant such as ascorbic acid.
[0089] Dispersible powders and granules suitable for preparation of an aqueous suspension
by the addition of water provide the active ingredient in admixture with a dispersing or
wetting agent, suspending agent and one or more preservatives. Suitable dispersing or
wetting agents and suspending agents are exemplified by those already mentioned above.
Additional excipients, for example sweetening, flavoring and coloring agents, may also be
present.
[0090] The pharmaceutical compositions of the invention may also be in the form of oil-in-
water emulsions. The oily phase may be a vegetable oil, for example olive oil or arachis oil,
or a mineral oil, for example liquid paraffin or mixtures of these. Suitable emulsifying agents
may be naturally-occurring gums, for example gum acacia or gum tragacanth, naturally-
occurring phosphatides, for example soybean, lecithin, and esters or partial esters derived
from fatty acids and hexitol anhydrides, for example sorbitan monooleate, and condensation
products of the said partial esters with ethylene oxide, for example polyoxyethylene sorbitan
monooleate. The emulsions may also contain sweetening and flavoring agents.
[0091] Syrups and elixirs may be formulated with sweetening agents, for example glycerol,
propylene glycol, sorbitol or sucrose. Such formulations may also contain a demulcent, a
preservative and flavoring and coloring agents. Oral solutions can be prepared in
combination with, for example, cyclodextrin, PEG and surfactants.
[0092] The pharmaceutical compositions may be in the form of a sterile injectable aqueous
or oleagenous suspension. This suspension may be formulated according to the known art
using those suitable dispersing or wetting agents and suspending agents which have been
mentioned above. The sterile injectable preparation may also be a sterile injectable solution
or suspension in a non-toxic parenterally-acceptable diluent or solvent, for example as a
solution in 1,3-butane diol. Among the acceptable vehicles and solvents that may be
employed are water, Ringer's solution and isotonic sodium chloride solution. In addition,
sterile, fixed oils are conventionally employed as a solvent or suspending medium. For this
purpose any bland fixed oil may be employed including synthetic mono- or diglycerides. In
addition, fatty acids such as oleic acid find use in the preparation of injectables.
40

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0093] The compounds of the present invention may also be administered in the form of
suppositories for rectal administration of the drug. These compositions can be prepared by
mixing the drug with a suitable non-irritating excipient which is solid at ordinary
temperatures but liquid at the rectal temperature and will therefore melt in the rectum to
release the drug. Such materials include cocoa butter and polyethylene glycols.
Additionally, the compounds can be administered via ocular delivery by means of solutions
or ointments. Still further, transdermal delivery of the subject compounds can be
accomplished by means of iontophoretic patches and the like. For topical use, creams,
ointments, jellies, solutions or suspensions, etc., containing the compounds of the present
invention are employed. As used herein, topical application is also meant to include the use
of mouth washes and gargles.
[0094] The compounds of this invention may also be coupled a carrier that is a suitable
polymers as targetable drug carriers. Such polymers can include polyvinylpyrrolidone, pyran
copolymer, polyhydroxy-propyl-methacrylamide-phenol, polyhydroxyethyl-aspartamide-
phenol, or polyethyleneoxide-polylysine substituted with palmitoyl residues. Furthermore,
the compounds of the invention may be coupled to a carrier that is a class of biodegradable
polymers useful in achieving controlled release of a drug, for example polylactic acid,
polyglycolic acid, copolymers of polylactic and polyglycolic acid, polyepsilon caprolactone,
polyhydroxy butyric acid, polyorthoesters, polyacetals, polydihydropyrans,
polycyanoacrylates and cross linked or ampbipathic block copolymers of hydrogels.
Polymers and semipermeable polymer matrices may be formed into shaped articles, such as
valves, stents, tubing, prostheses and the like. In one embodiment of the invention, the
compound of the invention is coupled to a polymer or semipermeable polymer matrix that is
formed as a stent or stent-graft device.
V. Methods of Treating Diseases Modulated by CCR1
[0095] In yet another aspect, the present invention provides methods of treating CCR1 -
mediated conditions or diseases by administering to a subject having such a disease or
condition, a therapeutically effective amount of a compound of formula I above. The
"subject" is defined herein to include animals such as mammals, including, but not limited to,
primates (e.g., humans), cows, sheep, goats, horses, dogs, cats, rabbits, rats, mice and the
like.
41

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0096] CCR1 provides a target for interfering with or promoting specific aspects of
immune cell functions, or more generally, with functions associated with CCR1 expression
on a wide range of cell types in a mammal, such as a human. Compounds that inhibit CCR1,
are particularly useful for modulating monocyte, macrophage, lymphocyte, granulocyte, NK
cell, mast cells, dendritic cell, neutrophils, and certain immune derived cell (for example,
osteoclasts) function for therapeutic purposes. Accordingly, the present invention is directed
to compounds which are useful in the prevention and/or treatment of a wide variety of
inflammatory and immunoregulatory disorders and diseases (see Saeki, et al., Current
Pharmaceutical Design 9:1201-1208 (2003)).
[0097] For example, an instant compound that inhibits one or more functions of CCR1 may
be administered to inhibit (i.e., reduce or prevent) inflammation or cellular infiltration
associated with an immune disorder. As a result, one or more inflammatory processes, such
as leukocyte emigration or infiltration, chemotaxis, exocytosis (e.g., of enzymes, histamine)
or inflammatory mediator release, can be inhibited. For example, monocyte infiltration to an
inflammatory site (e.g., an affected joint in arthritis, or into the CNS in MS) can be inhibited
according to the present method.
[0098] Similarly, an instant compound that promotes one or more functions of CCR1 is
administered to stimulate (induce or enhance) an inflammatory response, such as leukocyte
emigration, chemotaxis, exocytosis (e.g., of enzymes, histamine) or inflammatory mediator
release, resulting in the beneficial stimulation of inflammatory processes. For example,
monocytes can be recruited to combat bacterial infections.
[0099] Diseases and conditions associated with inflammation, immune disorders and
infection can be treated using the method of the present invention. In a preferred
embodiment, the disease or condition is one in which the actions of immune cells such
monocyte, macrophage, lymphocyte, granulocyte, NK cell, mast cell, dendritic cell, or certain
immune derived cell (for example, osteoclasts) are to be inhibited or promoted, in order to
modulate the inflammatory or autoimmune response.
[0100] In one group of embodiments, diseases or conditions, including chronic diseases, of
humans or other species can treated with modulators of CCR1 function. These diseases or
conditions include: (1) allergic diseases such as systemic anaphylaxis or hypersensitivity
responses, drug allergies, insect sting allergies and food allergies, (2) inflammatory bowel
diseases, such as Crohn's disease, ulcerative colitis, ileitis and enteritis, (3) vaginitis,
42

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
(4) psoriasis and inflammatory dermatoses such as dermatitis, eczema, atopic dermatitis,
allergic contact dermatitis, urticaria and pruritus, (5) vasculitis, (6) spondyloarthropathies,
(7) scleroderma, (8) asthma and respiratory allergic diseases such as allergic asthma, allergic
rhinitis, hypersensitivity lung diseases and the like, (9) autoimmune diseases, such as
fibromyalagia, scleroderma, ankylosing spondylitis, juvenile RA, Still's disease, polyarticular
juvenile RA, pauciarticular juvenile RA, polymyalgia rheumatica, rheumatoid arthritis,
psoriatic arthritis, osteoarthritis, polyarticular arthritis, multiple sclerosis, systemic lupus
erythematosus, type I diabetes, type II diabetes, glomerulonephritis, and the like, (10) graft
rejection (including allograft rejection and graft-v-host disease), and (11) other diseases in
which undesired inflammatory responses or immune disorders are to be inhibited, such as
cardiovascular disease including atherosclerosis and restenosis, myositis, neurodegenerative
diseases (e.g., Alzheimer's disease), encephalitis, meningitis, hepatitis, nephritis, sepsis,
sarcoidosis, allergic conjunctivitis, otitis, chronic obstructive pulmonary disease, sinusitis,
Behcet's syndrome and gout and (12) immune mediated food allergies such as Celiac disease.
[0101] In another group of embodiments, diseases or conditions can be treated with
modulators of CCR1 function. Examples of diseases to be treated with modulators of CCR1
function include cancers, cardiovascular diseases, diseases in which angiogenesis or
neovascularization play a role (neoplastic diseases, retinopathy and macular degeneration),
infectious diseases (viral infections, e.g., HIV infection, and bacterial infections) and
immunosuppressive diseases such as organ transplant conditions and skin transplant
conditions. The term "organ transplant conditions" is meant to include bone marrow
transplant conditions and solid organ (e.g., kidney, liver, lung, heart, pancreas or combination
thereof) transplant conditions.
[0102] The compounds of the present invention are accordingly useful in the prevention
and treatment of a wide variety of inflammatory and immunoregulatory disorders and
diseases.
[0103] Depending on the disease to be treated and the subject's condition, the compounds
of the present invention may be administered by oral, parenteral (e.g., intramuscular,
intraperitoneal, intravenous, ICV, intracisternal injection or infusion, subcutaneous injection,
or implant), by implantation (e.g., as when the compound is coupled to a stent device), by
inhalation spray, nasal, vaginal, rectal, sublingual, or topical routes of administration and may
be formulated, alone or together, in suitable dosage unit formulations containing conventional
43

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
non-toxic pharmaceutically acceptable earners, adjuvants and vehicles appropriate for each
route of administration.
[0104] In the treatment or prevention of conditions which require chemokine receptor
modulation an appropriate dosage level will generally be about 0.001 to 100 mg per kg
patient body weight per day which can be administered in single or multiple doses.
Preferably, the dosage level will be about 0.01 to about 25 mg/kg per day; more preferably
about 0.05 to about 10 mg/kg per day. A suitable dosage level may be about 0.01 to 25
mg/kg per day, about 0.05 to 10 mg/kg per day, or about 0.1 to 5 mg/kg per day. Within this
range the dosage may be 0.005 to 0.05, 0.05 to 0.5 or 0.5 to 5.0 mg/kg per day. For oral
administration, the compositions are preferably provided in the form of tablets containing 1.0
to 1000 milligrams of the active ingredient, particularly 1.0, 5.0,10.0,15.0, 20.0,25.0, 50.0,
75.0, 100.0,150.0,200.0,250.0, 300.0,400.0,500.0, 600.0,750.0, 800.0, 900.0, and 1000.0
milligrams of the active ingredient for the symptomatic adjustment of the dosage to the
patient to be treated. The compounds may be administered on a regimen of 1 to 4 times per
day, preferably once or twice per day.
[0105] It will be understood, however, that the specific dose level and frequency of dosage
for any particular patient may be varied and will depend upon a variety of factors including
the activity of the specific compound employed, the metabolic stability and length of action
of that compound, the age, body weight, hereditary characteristics, general health, sex and
diet of the subject, as well as the mode and time of administration, rate of excretion, drug
combination, and the severity of the particular condition for the subject undergoing therapy.
[0106] Diseases and conditions associated with inflammation, immune disorder, infection
and cancer can be treated or prevented with the present compounds, compositions, and
methods.
[0107] The compounds and compositions of the present invention can be combined with
other compounds and compositions having related utilities to prevent and treat the condition
or disease of interest, such as inflammatory or autoimmune disorders, conditions and
diseases, including inflammatory bowel disease, rheumatoid arthritis, osteoarthritis, psoriatic
arthritis, polyarticular arthritis, multiple sclerosis, allergic diseases, psoriasis, atopic
dermatitis and asthma, and those pathologies noted above.
[0108] For example, in the treatment or prevention of inflammation or autoimmunity or for
example arthritis associated bone loss, the present compounds and compositions may be used
44

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
in conjunction with an anti-inflammatory or analgesic agent such as an opiate agonist, a
lipoxygenase inhibitor, such as an inhibitor of 5-lipoxygenase, a cyclooxygenase inhibitor,
such as a cyclooxygenase-2 inhibitor, an interleukin inhibitor, such as an interleukin-1
inhibitor, an NMDA antagonist, an inhibitor of nitric oxide or an inhibitor of the synthesis of
nitric oxide, a non steroidal anti-inflammatory agent, or a cytokine-suppressing anti-
inflammatory agent, for example with a compound such as acetaminophen, aspirin, codeine,
fentanyl, ibuprofen, indomethacin, ketorolac, morphine, naproxen, phenacetin, piroxicam, a
steroidal analgesic, sufentanyl, sunlindac, tenidap, and the like. Similarly, the instant
compounds and compositions may be administered with an analgesic listed above; a
potentiator such as caffeine, an H2 antagonist (e.g., ranitidine), simethicone, aluminum or
magnesium hydroxide; a decongestant such as phenylephrine, phenylpropanolamine,
pseudoephedrine, oxymetazoline, ephinephrine, naphazoline, xylometazoline,
propylhexedrine, or levo desoxy ephedrine; an antitussive such as codeine, hydrocodone,
caramiphen, carbetapentane, or dextromethorphan; a diuretic; and a sedating or non sedating
antihistamine.
[0109] Likewise, compounds and compositions of the present invention may be used in
combination with other drags that are used in the treatment, prevention, suppression or
amelioration of the diseases or conditions for which compounds and compositions of the
present invention are useful. Such other drugs may be administered, by a route and in an
amount commonly used therefor, contemporaneously or sequentially with a compound or
composition of the present invention. When a compound or composition of the present
invention is used contemporaneously with one or more other drugs, a pharmaceutical
composition containing such other drugs in addition to the compound or composition of the
present invention is preferred. Accordingly, the pharmaceutical compositions of the present
invention include those that also contain one or more other active ingredients or therapeutic
agents, in addition to a compound or composition of the present invention. Examples of
other therapeutic agents that may be combined with a compound or composition of the
present invention, either administered separately or in the same pharmaceutical compositions,
include, but are not limited to: (a) VLA-4 antagonists, (b) corticosteroids, such as
beclomethasone, methylprednisolone, betamethasone, prednisone, prenisolone,
dexamethasone, fluticasone, hydrocortisone, budesonide, triamcinolone, salmeterol,
salmeterol, salbutamol, formeterol; (c) immunosuppressants such as cyclosporine
(cyclosporine A, Sandimmune®, Neoral®), tacrolirnus (FK-506, Prograf®), rapamycin
45

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
(sirolimus, Rapamune®) and other FK-506 type immunosuppressants, and mycophenolate,
e.g., mycophenolate niofetil (CellCept®); (d) antihistamines (H1-histamine antagonists) such
as bromopheniramine, chlorpheniramine, dexchloipheniramine, triprolidine, clemastine,
diphenhydramine, diphenylpyraline, tripelennamine, hydroxyzine, methdilazine,
promethazine, trimeprazine, azatadine, cyproheptadine, antazoline, pheniramine pyrilamine,
astemizole, terfenadine, loratadine, cetirizine, fexofenadine, descarboethoxyloratadine, and
the like; (e) non steroidal anti asthmatics (e.g., terbutaline, metaproterenol, fenoterol,
isoetharine, albuterol, bitolterol and pirbuterol), theophylline, cromolyn sodium, atropine,
ipratropium bromide, leukotriene antagonists (e.g., zafinlukast, montelukast, pranrakast,
iralukast, pobilukast and SKB-106,203), leukotriene biosynthesis inhibitors (zileuton,
BAY-1005); (f) non steroidal anti-inflammatory agents (NSAIDs) such as propionic acid
derivatives (e.g., alminoprofen, benoxaprofen, bucloxic acid, carprofen, fenbufen,
fenoprofen, fluprofen, flurbiprofen, ibuprofen, indoprofen, ketoprofen, rniroprofen, naproxen,
oxaprozin, pirprofen, pranoprofen, suprofen, tiaprofenic acid and tioxaprofen), acetic acid
derivatives (e.g., indomethacin, acemetacin, alclofenac, clidanac, diclofenac, fenclofenac,
fenclozic acid, fentiazac, furofenac, ibufenac, isoxepac, oxpinac, sulindac, tiopinac, tolmetin,
zidometacin and zomepirac), fenamic acid derivatives (e.g., flufenamic acid, meclofenamic
acid, mefenamic acid, niflumic acid and tolfenamic acid), biphenylcarboxylic acid derivatives
(e.g., diflunisal and flufenisal), oxicams (e.g., isoxicam, piroxicam, sudoxicam and
tenoxican), salicylates (e.g., acetyl salicylic acid and sulfasalazine) and the pyrazolones (e.g.,
apazone, bezpiperylon, feprazone, mofebutazone, oxyphenbutazone and phenylbutazone);
(g) cyclooxygenase-2 (COX-2) inhibitors such as celecoxib (Celebrex®) and rofecoxib
(Vioxx®); (h) inhibitors of phosphodiesterase type IV (PDE IV); (i) gold compounds such as
auranofin and aurothioglucose, (j) etanercept (Enbrel®), (k) antibody therapies such as
orthoclone (OKT3), daclizumab (Zenapax®), basiliximab (Simulect®) and infliximab
(Remicade®), (1) other antagonists of the chemokine receptors, especially CCR5, CXCR2,
CXCR3, CCR2, CCR3, CCR4, CCR7, CX3CR1 and CXCR6; (m) lubricants or emollients
such as petrolatum and lanolin, (n) keratolytic agents (e.g., tazarotene), (o) vitamin D3
derivatives, e.g., calcipotriene or calcipotriol (Dovonex®), (p) PUVA, (q) anthralin
(Drithrocreme®), (r) etretinate (Tegison®) and isotretinoin and (s) multiple sclerosis
therapeutic agents such as interferon β-1β (Betaseron®), interferon (β-1α (Avonex®),
azathioprine (Imurek®, Imuran®), glatiramer acetate (Capoxone®), a glucocorticoid (e.g.,
prednisolone) and cyclophosphamide (t) DMARDS such as methotrexate (u) other
46

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
compounds such as 5-aminosalicylic acid and prodrugs thereof; hydroxychloroquine;
D-penicillamine; antimetabolites such as azathioprine, 6-mercaptopurine and methotrexate;
DNA synthesis inhibitors such as hydroxyurea and raicrotubule disrupters such as colchicine.
The weight ratio of the compound of the present invention to the second active ingredient
may be varied and will depend upon the effective dose of each ingredient. Generally, an
effective dose of each will be used. Thus, for example, when a compound of the present
invention is combined with an NSAID the weight ratio of the compound of the present
invention to the NSAID will generally range from about 1000:1 to about 1:1000, preferably
about 200:1 to about 1:200. Combinations of a compound of the present invention and other
active ingredients will generally also be within the aforementioned range, but in each case, an
effective dose of each active ingredient should be used.
VI. EXAMPLES
[0110] The following examples are offered to illustrate, but not to limit the claimed
invention.
[0111] Reagents and solvents used below can be obtained from commercial sources such as
Aldrich Chemical Co. (Milwaukee, Wisconsin, USA). 1H-NMR spectra were recorded on a
Varian Mercury 400 MHz NMR spectrometer. Significant peaks are provided relative to
TMS and are tabulated in the order: multiplicity (s, singlet; d, doublet; t, triplet; q, quartet; m,
multiplet) and number of protons. Mass spectrometry results are reported as the ratio of mass
over charge, followed by the relative abundance of each ion (in parenthesis). In the
examples, a single m/e value is reported for the M+H (or, as noted, M-H) ion containing the
most common atomic isotopes. Isotope patterns correspond to the expected formula in all
cases. Electrospray ionization (ESI) mass spectrometry analysis was conducted on a
Hewlett-Packard MSD electrospray mass spectrometer using the HP 1100 HPLC for sample
delivery. Normally the analyte was dissolved in methanol at 0.1 mg/mL and 1 microlitre was
infused with the delivery solvent into the mass spectrometer, which scanned from 100 to
1500 daltons. All compounds could be analyzed in the positive ESI mode, using acetonitrile /
water with 1 % formic acid as the delivery solvent. The compounds provided below could
also be analyzed in the negative ESI mode, using 2 mM NH4OAc in acetonitrile / water as
delivery system.
47

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0112] Compounds within the scope of this invention can be synthesized as described
below, using a variety of reactions known to the skilled artisan. A sample of useful routes to
the azaindazole derivatives and certain compounds of the invention are provided below or
elsewhere within the present application. In the descriptions of the syntheses that follow,
some of the arylpiperazine and heteroaromatic subunit precursors were obtained from
commercial sources. These commercial sources include Aldrich Chemical Co., Acros
Organics, Ryan Scientific Incorporated, Oakwood Products Incorporated, Lancaster
Chemicals, Sigma Chemical Co., Lancaster Chemical Co., TCI-America, Alfa Aesar, Davos
Chemicals, and GFS Chemicals. Certain relevant arylpiperazine compounds can be
commercially obtained. Others could be prepared as described in U.S. Patent Application
No. 11/008,774, the contents of which is hereby incorporated in its entirety for all purposes.
Also, standard chemistries have been employed to link the arylpiperazine and heteroaromatic
subunits (whether commercially obtained or prepared by the methods below) using a suitably
optimized linker, such as the acetyl unit described in the body of this invention.
[0113] One skilled in the art will also recognize that alternative methods may be employed
to synthesize the target compounds of this invention, and that the approaches described
within the body of this document are not exhaustive, but do provide broadly applicable and
practical routes to compounds of interest.
[0114] Certain molecules claimed in this patent can exist in different enantiomeric and
diastereomeric forms and all such variants of these compounds are claimed.
[0115] Regioisomerism is a common property in organic chemistry, and is especially
common with regards to certain structural types provided herein. Those skilled in the art will .
recognize, with respect to the compounds described herein, that the coupling reactions with
the heteroaromatic ring systems can lead to either one of or a mixture of detectable
regioisomers.
[0116] The detailed description of the experimental procedures used to synthesize key
compounds in this text lead to molecules that are described by the physical data identifying
them as well as by the structural depictions associated with them.
[0117] Those skilled in the art will also recognize that during standard work up procedures
in organic chemistry, acids and bases are frequently used. Salts of the parent compounds are
sometimes produced, if they possess the necessary intrinsic acidity or basicity, during the
experimental procedures described within this patent.
48

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 1
Synthesis of lH-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine.

[0118] 2-Chloro-3-formylpyridine (15.02 g, 106 mmol, 1 equiv), hydrazine (10 mL,
excess), and dioxane (90 mL) were combined in a sealed tube and heated at 150 °C for 16 hr.
After cooling to room temperature, the solvent was evaporated in vacuo to provide a crude
residue which was diluted with dichloromethane (600 mL). The organic solution was washed
with water (50 mL), brine (50 mL) and dried over anhydrous sodium sulfate. The solvent
was removed in vacuo to provide 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine as a yellow powder which was
used without further purification: LCMS (ES) M+H 120.3, Rf 0.20 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-
C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5, 35 °C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a
1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1%
formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 2
Synthesis of 3-Thiazol-2-yl-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.

[0119] To a suspension of 2-chloro-3-[(2-thiazolyl)carbonyl]pyridine (257.5 mg, 1.2 mmol,
1 equiv) in dioxane (3 mL) in a sealed tube was added hydrazine (2 mL). The mixture was
heated at 150 °C overnight, cooled to room temperature and concentrated in vacuo to provide
a crude residue. The resultant residue was diluted with dichloromethane (300 mL), washed
with water (50 mL) and brine (50 mL). The organic layer was separated, dried over sodium
sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo to provide 3-thiazol-2-yl-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine (212.3 mg) as a yellow powder which used without further purification: LCMS
(ES) M+H 203.5, Rf 2.68 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, 1ml/min
flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1%
formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
49

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 3
Synthesis of 1H-Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-3-ylamine.

[0120] 2-Chloro-3-cyanopyridine (2.77 g), hydrazine (5 mL), and dioxane (100 mL) were
combined in a sealed tube and heated at 150 °C for 16 hr. The reaction mixture was cooled to
room temperature and concentrated in vacuo to provide a crude residue. The resultant
residue was dissolved in ethyl acetate (100 mL) and washed with saturated NaCl solution (50
mL). The organic layer was dried over sodium sulfate, filtered, and concentrated in vacuo to
afford 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-3-ylamine as a yellow solid which was used without
further purification.
Example 4
Synthesis of lH-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine.

[0121] Preparation of of 3-N-acetylamino-4-methylpyridine: To solution of 3-amino-4-
methylpyridine (540.2 mg, 5.0 mmol, 1 equiv) in dichloromethane (20 mL) was added
pyridine (0.8 mL, 10.0 mmol, 2 equiv) and acetic anhydride (0.57 mL, 6.0 mmol, 1.2 equiv).
The resultant solution was stirred at room temperature for 16 h and concentrated in vacuo to
provide a crude residue. The residue was diluted with dichloromethane (200 mL), and
washed with saturated sodium bicarbonate aqueous solution (50 mL) and brine (50 mL). The
organic layer was separated, dried over sodium sulfate, and concentrated in vacuo to yield 3-
acetylamino-4-methylpyridine (400.2 mg) as yellow solid which was used without further
purification.
[0122] Preparation of 1-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone: To a suspension of 3-
acetylamino-4-methylpyridine (301.5 mg, 2.0 mmol, 1 equiv) in toluene (3 mL) was added
tert-butyl nitrite (r-BuONO) (420 µL, 3.2 mmol, 1.6 equiv), acetic anhydride (560 µL, 6.0
mmol, 3 equiv) and potassium acetate (235.2 mg, 2.4 mmol, 1.2 equiv). The resultant
mixture was heated at 80 °C for 2 hours, cooled to room temperature, and diluted with ethyl
acetate (200 mL). The mixture was washed with saturated sodium bicarbonate solution(50
50

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
mL), water (50 mL) and brine (50 mL). The organic layer was dried over sodium sulfate and
concentrated in vacno to provide a crude residue. The residue was purified by flash
chromatography (silica, 15% ethyl acetate/hexane to 50% ethyl acetate/hexane) to give 1-
pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone (20.2 mg) which was used without further purification.
[0123] Synthesis of 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine: To a solution of 1-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone (20.2 mg, 0.17 mmol, 1 equiv) in tetrahydrofuran (2 mL) and
methanol (0.5 mL) was added sodium hydroxide aqueous solution (2M, 0.25 mL). The
reaction solution was stirred at room temperature for 1 hr and then concentrated in vacuo to
provide a crude residue. The crude residue was diluted with water (20 mL) and extracted
with dichloromethane (2 x100 mL). The combined organic layers were washed with brine,
dried over sodium sulfate, and concentrated in vacuo to provide 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine
as white powder, which used without further purification: LCMS (ES) M+H 120.3, Rf 0.22
min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, 1 ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient
of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 5
Synthesis of 3-Iodo-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.

[0124] To a solution of 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (500.0 mg, 4.2 mmol, 1 equiv) in DMF
(10 mL) at 0 °C, was added iodine (2.13 g, 8.4 mmol, 2 equiv) and potassium hydroxide (943
mg, 16.8 mmol, 4 equiv). The resultant mixture was allowed to warm to room temperature
and stirred for 1 hour. The reaction solution was slowly quenched with saturated sodium
thiosulfate (Na2S2O5) solution (10 mL), and extracted with ethyl acetate (2 x 200 mL). The
combined organic layers were washed with water (3 x 50 mL), brined (50 mL), dried over
sodium sulfate and concentrated in vacuo to give 3-Iodo-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (1.02 g)
as a yellow powder which was used without further purification: LCMS (ES) M+H 246.2, Rf
2.17 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35°C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min
gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
51

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 6
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazm-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-ylethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-
(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-ylethanone.

[0125} 2-Choloro-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-
yl]ethanone(arylpiperazine)(4.81 g, 14.32 mmol, 1 equiv), 1H-pyrazole[3,4-b]pyridine (2.27
g, 17.18 mmol, 1.2 equiv), and potassium carbonate (20.00 g, 143.2 mmol, 10 equiv) were
dissolved in dimethylformamide (DMF) (10 mL) and heated at 80 °C for 1 hour, then cooled
to room temperature. The resultant mixture was diluted with ethyl acetate (300 mL), and
washed with water (3 x 150 mL) and brine (100 mL). The organic layer was dried (Na2SO4)
and concentrated in vacuo to provide a crude residue. The crude residue was purified by
flash chromatography (silica, 100% ethyl acetate with 1% triethylamine to 100% acetone
with 1% triethylamine) provided 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-
methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine-1-ylethanone(2.3 g) and 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-
fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-
ylethanone (2.5 g).
[0126] For 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(5)-methyl- piperazin-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine-1-yl-ethanone; LCMS (ES) M+H 418.5, R/2.34min (Agilent Zorbax
SB-C18,2.1 x 50mm, 5µ 35 °C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B =
0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile): For 1-[4-(4-cliloro-2-fluoro-5-
methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-ylethanone; LCMS
(ES) M+H 418.5, Rf 2.00 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, Iml/min
flow rate, a2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1%
formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
52

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 7
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
(3-oxazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0127] Preparation of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-
l-yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: This compound was synthesized
according to the synthetic procedure outlined in Example 6.
[0128] Synthesis of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1 -
yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yI-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: To a solution of oxazole (40 µL,
0.54 mmol, 3 equiv) in tetrahydrofuran (1 mL) under nitrogen atmosphere, was added
dropwise n-butyl lithium (2.5 M in Hexane, 220 uL, 0.54 mmol, 3 equiv.). The resultant
mixture was stirred at -78 °C for an additional 30 min followed by the addition of ZnCl2
(0.5M in THF, 1.5 mL, 0.72 mmol, 4 equiv.). The reaction solution was allowed to warm to
0 °C and stirred 1 hr followed by the addition of 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-
2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (100.2 mg,
0.18 mmol, 1 equiv) and palladium tetrakis(triphenylphosphine) (22.3 mg, 0.018,0.1 equiv).
The reaction mixture was then heated to reflux for 48 hr, cooled to room temperature and
diluted with ethyl acetate (150 mL). The reaction mixture was washed with water (20 mL),
brine (20 mL), dried over sodium sulfate, and concentrated in vacuo touprovide the crude
product. Purification by preparative HPLC provided the desired product 1 -[4-(4-chloro-2-
fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-
%yridin-1-yl)-ethanone as a white powder (38.5 mg): LCMS (ES) M+H 485.5, Rf 2,56 min
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ 35 °C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
53

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 8
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxyphenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-
1-ylethanone and1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxyphenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-2-ylethanone.

[0129] The two title compounds were synthesized according to the synthetic procedure as
outlined in Example 6: For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-ylethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) δ 8.57 (dd, 1H), 8.1 l(s, 1H), 8.09 (dd,
1H), 7.22(d, 1H), 7.17 (dd, 1H), 6.49 (d, 1H), 6.42 (dd, 1H), 5.44 (s, 2H), 3.92 (s, 3H), 3.79
(m, 4H), 3.18 (m, 4H); MS (M+H)+: 386.5: For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyl)piperazin-
l-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine-2-ylethanone; 1HNMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.65 (dd, 1H),
8.12(s, 1H), 8.02 (dd, 1H), 7.20(d, 1H), 7.03 (dd, 1H), 6.45 (d, 1H), 6.40 (dd, 1H), 5.35 (s,
2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3.87 (m, 2H), 3.79 (m, 2H), 3.15 (m, 4H); MS (M+H)+: 386.5.
Example 9
Synthesis of lH-PyrazoIo[4,3-c]pyridine

[0130] 1H-Pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine was prepared according to the procedure outlined in
Example 1.
Example 10
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-
(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone.
54

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0131] The two title compounds were synthesized according to the procedure as outlined in
Example 6. For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl-ethanone: LCMS (ES) M+H 418.5, Rf 1.74 min (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to
100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9%
water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile): For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-
methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone;
LCMS (ES) M+H 418.5, Rf 1.69 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 11
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridine-1-yl-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone.

[0132] The two title compounds were synthesized according to the procedure outlined in
Example 6: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridine-1-yl-ethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 9.02 (s, 1H), 8.34 (d, 1H), 8.09 (d,
1H), 7.63 (dd, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.48 (d, 1H), 6.42 (dd, 1H), 5.38 (s, 2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3.79
(m, 4H), 3.14 (m, 4H) MS (M+H)+, 386.5: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-
l-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3)) 9.22 (s, 1H),
8.13 (d, 1H), 8.10 (d, 1H), 7.50 (dd, 1H), 7.19 (d, 1H), 6.45 (d, 1H), 6.39 (dd, 1H), 5.37 (s,
2H), 3.85 (s, 3H), 3.76 (m, 4H), 3.14 (m, 4H). MS (M+H)+, 386.5.
55

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 12
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo [3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyI)-piperazin-1-
yl]-2-pyrazoIo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl-ethanone.

[0133] The two title compounds were synthesized according to the procedure outlined in
Example 6. For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazoto[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone: LCMS (ES) M+H, 404.5, R/2.14 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1
x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min
wash at 100% B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid
/ 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile): For 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-
l-yl]-2-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl-ethanone; LCMS (ES) M+H, 404.5, Rf 1.76 min (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to
100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9%
water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 13
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
(3-thiazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridin-1-yI)-ethanone.

[0134] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 501.5, Rf 2.82 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
56

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 14
Synthesis 3-pyrid-2-yl-lH-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine.

[0135] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
2.
Example 15
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyI)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
(3-pyridin-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0136] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 495.54, Rf 2.73 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 16
Synthesis of 3-Chloro-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.

[0137] 1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (89 rag) and N-chlorosuceinimide (220 mg) were
combined in CH2Cl2 (4 mL) and heated at 45 °C for 16 hr, then cooled to room temperature.
The resultant mixture was purified by flash chromatography (silica gel, 50% hexane/ethyl
acetate) to afford 3-chloro-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.
Example 17
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyI)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-chloropyrazolo[3,4-
6]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.
57

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0138] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 420.5, Rf 2.37 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100%B witha 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 18
Synthesis of 3-Methyl-lH-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine

[0139] To a solution of 2-chloro-3-cyanopyridine (139 mg) in tetrahydrofuran (5 mL) at 0
°C was added dropwise a solution of MeMgBr (3M in ether, 0.67 mL). The resultant mixture
was warmed to room temperature and stirred for 3 hr. The reaction solution was cooled to 0
°C and to it was added aqueous HCl solution (2M, 5 mL). The reaction solution was then
stirred an additional 16 hr at room temperature and then neutralized by the addition of
saturated sodium bicarbonate (NaHCO3) solution. The reaction solution was filtered to
remove any precipitates and the filtrate was washed with ethyl acetate (3 x 10 mL) and
aqueous brine (NaCl) solution (10 mL). The organic layer was dried over sodium sulfate
(Na2SO4), filtered and concentrated in vacuo to give 3-acetyl-2-chloropyridine as a yellow
powder which was used without further purification. The title compound (3-Methyl-1H-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine) was synthesized from 3-acetyl-2-chloropyridine according to the
procedure outlined in Example 2.
Example 19
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyI)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-methylpyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.

58

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0140] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 400.5, R/2.12 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 ram, 5y., 35 °C,
Iml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 20
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-methylpiperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-
methylpyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.

[0141] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 432.5, Rf2.42 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 21
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyI)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-pyridin-2-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.

[0142] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 463.5, Rf 2.32 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
59

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 22
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxyphenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-thiazol-2-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.

[0143] The title compound was synthesized according the procedure outlined in Example 6:
LCMS (ES) M+H 469.5, Rf2.43 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1 ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetbnitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 23
Synhesis of 2-(3-Aminopyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-
methoxyphenyl)-2-methylpiperazin-1-yl]ethanone.

[0144] 1H-Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-3-ylamine (67 mg), 2-Chloro-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-
methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-ethanone (167 mg) and K2CO3 (414 mg) were
combined in DMF (1 mL) and heated at 80 °C for 2 hr, then cooled to room temperature.
The resultant mixture was purified by preparative HPLC to provide 2-(3-Aminopyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-methylpiperazin-1-yl]ethanone
as a yellow powder. LCMS (ES) M+H 433.5, Rf2.06 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50
mm, 5µ, 35 °C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash
at 100% B; A= 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5%
water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 24
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.
60

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0145] The title was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example 7: LCMS
(ES) M+H 453.5, Rf2.20 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, lml/min
flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A= 0.1 %
formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 25
Synthesis of 3-Fluoro-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.

[0146] The title was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example 5 using
SelectFluor™ (1-Chloromethyl-4-fluoro-1,4-diazoniabicyclo[2.2.2]octane
bis(tetrafluoroborate)) as the electrophile.
Example 26
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazm-1-yl]-2-(3-fluoro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0147] The title compound was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example
6: LCMS (ES) M+H 404.5, R/2.27 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.08% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
61

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 27
Synthesis of 1-{2- [4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-lH-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carbonitrile.

[0148] 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3 -methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3 -iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (128 mg) and CuCN (112 mg) were combined in N-methylpyridone
(NMP) (1 mL) and heated at 165 °C for 16 hr, then cooled to room temperature. The reaction
mixture was purified on preparative HPLC to afford 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carbonitrile as a white powder:
LCMS (ES) M+H 411.5, Rf 2.33 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A=
0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 28
Synthesis of lH-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridine.

[0149] 1H-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridine was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in
Example 4: LCMS (ES) M+H 120.3.
Example 29
Synthesis of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridine-
l-yl-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-
b]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone.

62

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0150] The two title compounds were synthesized according to the procedure outlined in
Example 6: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridine-
1-yl-ethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, DMSO-d6) 6 8.71 (dd, 1H), 8.26 (s, 1H), 8.04 (dd, 1H),
7.36 (dd, 1H), 7.20 (d, 1H), 6.69 (d, 1H), 6.51 (dd, 1H), 5.57 (s, 2H), 3.82 (s, 3H), 3.73 (m,
2H), 3.59 (m, 2H), 3.31 (m, 2H), 3.19 (m, 2H). LCMS (ES) M+H 386.5 , Rf 1.84 min
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1x50 mm, 5µ, 35°C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A = 0.1% formic acid/ 5% acetonitrile/
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile). For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-
methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-pyrazolo[4,3-b]pyridine-2-yl-ethanone; 1H NMR (400
MHz, CDCl3) 8 8.55 (d, 1H), 8.34 (s, 1H), 7.99 (d, 1H), 7.19 (m, 2H), 6.44 (d, 1H), 6.40 (dd,
1H), 5.34 (s, 2H), 3.86 (s, 3H), 3.77 (m, 2H), 3.72 (m, 2H), 3.13 (m, 4H). LCMS (ES)M+H
386.5, Rf 1.69 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1x50 mm, 5µ, 35°C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5
min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 30
Synthesis of 2-(3-Chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-acetic acid.

[0151] Preparation of pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl-acetic acid ethyl ester: This compound
was synthesized according to the procedure outlined in Example 6, using chloro-acetic acid
ethyl ester in place of 2-Chloro-1-[4-(4-chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxyphenyl)-2-(S)-
methylpiperazin-1 -yl]ethanone.
[0152] Preparation of (3-Chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl)-acetic acid ethyl ester: To a
solution of pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl-acetic acid ethyl ester 57 (40.2 mg, 0.2 mmol, 1
equiv) in 1 mL of dichloromethane was added NCS (32.7 mg, 1.2 mmol, 1.2 equiv). The
resultant mixture was heated at 70 °C for 30 min., cooled to room temperature, and diluted
with 100 mL of dichloromethane. The organic solution was washed with 50 mL of saturated
63

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
sodium bicarbonate aqueous solution, and 50 mL of brine. The organic layer was separated
and dried over sodium sulfate. Evaporation of solvent in vacuo gave 46.7 mg of (3-chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridin-2-yl)-acetic acid ethyl ester as yellow solid.
[0153] Synthesis of 2-(3-Chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-acetic acid: (3-Chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-2-yl)-acetic acid ethyl ester was treated with 1N lithium hydroxide
(LiOH) (1 equiv) in 1 mL of MeOH to provide 2-(3-Chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-
acetic acid, which was used as directly in subsequent reactions without further purification:
LCMS(ES) M+H 212.0, Rf 0.34 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1x50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A =
0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water / 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 31
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0154] The title compound was synthesized according to standard amide formation
conditions using 2-(7-Aza-lH-benzotriazole-1-yl)-1,1,3,3-tetramethyluronium
hexafluorophosphate (HATU) as the coupling reagent: LCMS(ES) M+H 420.4, Rf 2.17 min
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1x50 mm, 5u, 35 °C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile.
Example 32
Synthesis of 2-(Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-acetic acid.

64

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0155] Preparation of 2-(Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-acetic acid ethyl ester: To a
solution of pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-acetic acid ethyl ester (205.4 mg, 1 mmol, 1 equiv) in
10 mL of dichloromethane at 0 °C, was added meta-chloroperoxybenzoic acid (mCPBA)
(345.3 mg, 1.5 mmol, 1.5 equiv). The resultant mixture was allowed to warm to room
temperature, and the reaction was stirred overnight. 1 mL of pyridine was added to the
reaction mixture, and the mixture was stirred for another 30 min before the solvent was
removed to provide a residue. The residue was diluted with 200 mL of dichloromethane, and
washed with 1 N NaOH aqueous solution (10 mL x 2), brine (20 mL). The organic layer was
separated and dried over sodium sulfate. Evaporation in vacuo gave 2-(pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-acetic acid ethyl ester as pale yellow solid, which was used without
further purification: LCMS(ES) M+H 222.4, Rf 1.48 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50
mm, 5µ, 35 °C, 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash
at 100% B; A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
water / 94.9% acetonitrile.
[0156] Synthesis of 2-(Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-acetic acid: 2-(pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-acetic acid ethyl ester was treated with 1N LiOH (1 equiv) in 1 mL of
methanol (MeOH) to provide 2-(Pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridm-1-yl-7-oxide)-aceric acid:
LCMS(ES) M+H 194.2, Rf 0.22 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1x50 mm, 5µ, 35°C,
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A =
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water / 94.9%
acetonitrile
Example 33
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazin-1-yl]-2-(pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl-7-oxide)-ethanone.

[0157] The title compound was prepared according to standard amide formation conditions
as described in Example 43 using HATU as the coupling reagent: LCMS(ES) M+H 402.5,
Rf 1.54 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1x50 mm, 5µ, 35 °C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min
65

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B; A = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water / 94.9% acetonitrile.
Example 34
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl)-2-(6-methyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0158] 2-chloro-3-cyano-6-picoline was reduced by diisobutylaluminum hydride (DIBAL-
H) following a literature procedure (Baker et. al, J. Org. Chem., 1980, 45,1354-1362.)
followed by the hydrazine condensation protocol as described in Example 1 to provide the
corresponding 6-Methyl-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine, which was then subjected to the
alkylation protocol in described in Example 6 to provide title compound as a white powder:
LCMS (ES) M+H 400.5, Rf 2.161 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B, A =
0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 35
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b] pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0159] Preparation of (6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-acetic acid ethyl ester: To a
solution of 1H-6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (1 mmol, 1 eq.) in 3 mL of THF was added
NaH (1.5 mmol, 1.5 eq.) portion by portion at 0 °1C under nitrogen. The resultant mixture
66

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
was stirred at 0 °C for 10 minutes followed by the slow addition of 2-chloro ethyl acetate
(excess) at 0 °C. The resultant mixture was slowly to warmed to rt, and stirred for another 2
h. To the reaction mixture was added saturated NH4Cl aq. solution, and aqueous mixture was
extracted with 300 mL of EtOAc. The organic extract was separated and washed with sat.
sodium bicarbonate aq. solution, brine solution, filtered and dried over sodium sulfate. The
organic solvent was removed in vacuo, and the crude residue was purified by silica gel
chromatography to provide 50.2 mg desired product: HPLC retention time = 0.78 minutes
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute
gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (BS)
M+H expect = 220.1, found =220.4.
[0160] Preparation of (6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-acetic acid: This compound
was synthesized according to standard ester hydrolysis protocol as described in Example 30
using 1N LiOH as the base. The isolated product was used in the next step without
purification.
[0161] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-methyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: The title compound was synthesized according to
standard peptide coupling protocol using HATU as the coupling reagent: 1H NMR (400
MHz, CDCl3) 8 8.04 (s, 1H), 7.96 (d, 1H), 7.20 (d, 1H), 6.95 (d, 1H), 6.45(d, 1H), 6.40 (dd,
1H), 5.29 (s, 2H), 3.92 (m, 2H), 3.88(s, 3H), 3.78 (m, 2H), 3.13 (m, 4H). LCMS observed for
(M+H)+: 400.5.
Example 36
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-morpholin-4-yl-
pyra2oio[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0162] A mixture of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (102.4 mg), morpholine (0.20 mL), Xantphos (35 mg),
67

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Pd2(dba)3 (18.3 mg) and Cs2CO3 (97 mg) in THF (1 mL) was heated to 80 °C for 12 h. The
reaction mixture was allowed to cool to room temperature, diluted by EtOAc (3 mL) and
filtered. The filtrate was evaporated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified by flash
chromatography (silica, Hexane/EtOAc) to provide the title compound as a white powder:
LCMS (ES) M+H 471.6, Rf 2.043 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C,
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B, A =
0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile).
Example 37
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridin-1-yl-ethanone.

[0163] The title compound was synthesized following the alkylation protocol as described
in Example 6: LCMS (ES) M+H 418.4, Rf 2.055 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm,
5µ, 35°C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at
100% B, A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.08% formic acid / 5%
water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 38
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-ChIoro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-oxy-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0164] A mixture of 6-azaindazole (119 mg), H2O2 (0.2 mL) in acetic acid (5 mL) was
heated to 60 °C for 2 h. The resultant mixture was cooled to room temperature and
concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was dissolved in EtOAc (10 mL), washed with sat.
aqueous NaHCO3 solution (3 mL), dried (Na2SO4), filtered and evaporated in vacuo. The
crude product (the N-oxide) was subjected to the alkylation protocol as described in Example
68

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
6 to provide the title compound as a white powder: LCMS (ES) M+H 402.4, Rf 2.147 min
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C, lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100% B, A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5 % acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 39
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[4,3-
c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0165] Preparation of 1H-4-chloro-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine: To a mixture of 2-chloro-4-
iodopyridine-3-carbaldehyde (6.24 mmol, 1 eq.) and 5 mL of ethanol was added 4mL of
hydrazine (excess), the resultant mixture was stirred at rt for 6 h. The reaction solution was
concentrated in vacuo, and the crude residue was diluted with 50 mL of water, and extracted
with 500 mL of dichloromethane. The organic layer was then washed with brine, dried over
anhydrous sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated to provide a crude residue. To the crude
residue was dissolved with 10 mL of dichloromethane and stirred for 5 minutes. The
precipitated solids were isolated by filtration, washed with 2 mL of dichloromethane, and
dried in vacuo to provided 350.2 mg of 1H-4-chloro-pyrazolo[4,3,c]pyridine: HPLC
retention time = 0.44 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100%B witha 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile): MS (ES) M+H expected = 154.0, found =154.3.
[0166] Synthesis of l-f4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: Using 1H-4-chloro-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine, the title
compound was synthesized according to alkylation protocol in Example 6: 1H NMR (400
MHz, CDCl3) 5.8.18 (d, 1H), 7.31(dd, 1H), 7.21 (d, 1H), 6.47 (d, 1H), 6.42 (dd, 1H), 5.28 (s,
2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3.77 (m, 4H), 3.14 (m, 4 H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 420.4.
69

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 40
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyI)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo(4,3-
c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyI)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-
iodo-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0167] Preparation of 1H-4-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4,b]pyridine: To a mixture of 2-chloro-4-
iodopyridine-3-carbaldehyde (6.24 mmol, 1eq.) and 5 mL of ethanol was added 4mL of
hydrazine (excess), the resultant mixture was stirred at rt for 6 h. The reaction mixture was
concentrated in vacuo and crude residue was diluted with 50 mL of water, and extracted with
500 mL of dichloromethane. The organic layer was washed with brine, dried over anhydrous
sodium sulfate and concentration in vacuo to provide a crude residue. To this residue was
added 10 mL of dichloromethane, the resultant mixture was stirred for 5 minutes which
resulted in the precipation of the undesired cyclization isomer (1H-4-chloro-
pyrazolo[4,3,c]pyridine) which was removed by filtration. The filtrate was concentrated in
vacuo, and purified be by silica gel column (35% acetone in hexane to 50% acetone in
hexane) to provide 250.0 mg of 1H-4-iodo-pyrazoJo[3,4,b]pyridine with a purity around 85%,
which was used without further purification: HPLC retention time = 1.22 minutes (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5\i, 35°C) using Iml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect =
246.0, found =246.1.
[0168] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1 -yl)-ethanone and 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -
yl]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: The title compounds were synthesized
according to the standard alkylation procedure described in Example 6. For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-
methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: HPLC
retention time = 2.50 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
70

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
1ml/mm flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 512.0, found =512.4; For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-
methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: HPLC
retention time = 2.23 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 512.0, found =512.4
Example 41
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-methylsulfonyl-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0169] A mixture of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-iodo-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone (0.1 mmol, 1 eq.), Cul (0.3 mmol, 3 eq.) and
NaSO2Me (0.3 mmol, 1 eq.) in 1 mL of DMSO was heated at 80 °C for 2 h. The reaction
solution was cooled to rt, and diluted with 20 mL of sat. NH4Cl aq. solution and 200 mL of
EtOAc. The diluted mixture was stirred vigorously for 2 h. The organic layer was then
separated, washed with brine, dried over sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo to
provide the crude product. Purification by HPLC provided 40.2 mg desired product: 1H
NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.76 (d, 1H), 8.49(d, 1H), 7.65 (d, 1H), 7.23 (d, 1H), 6.50 (d, 1H),
6.44 (dd, 1H), 5.53 (s, 2H), 3.89 (s, 3H), 3.79 (m, 4H), 3.22 (m+s, 4H+3H). LCMS observed
for (M+H)+: 464.4.
Example 42
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-amidomethyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.
71

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0170] Preparation of (3-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester: This
compound was synthesized following the alkylation protocol similar to the one described in
Example 6: HPLC retention time = 2.06 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ,
35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 0% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute
wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic
acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 220.1, found =220.4.
[0171] Preparation of [3-(bromomethyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl
ester: A mixture of (3-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)ethyl acetate (2.5 mmol, 1 eq.),
NBS (3.0 mmol, 1.2 eq.), and benzoly peroxide (0.05 mmol, 0.02 eq.) in 10 mL of CCl4 was
refluxed for 1.5 h. The resultant mixture was cooled to rt, and diluted with 500 mL of
EtOAc. The resultant solution was then washed with 100 mL of sat. sodium bicarbonate
aqueous solution, brine solution, dried over anhydrous sodium sulfate, filtered and
concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified by silica gel chromatography (20%
EtOAc in hexane to 35% EtOAc in hexane) to provide 450.2 mg of the desired product:
HPLC retention time = 2.50 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5^, 35°C) using
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 0% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B
(A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 298.0, found =298.3.
[0172] Preparation of (3-azido-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester: A
mixture of (3-(bromomethyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester (0.5 mmol,
1 eq.) and sodium azide (1 mmol, 2 eq.) in 1 mL of DMF was heated at 80 °C for 1 h. The
resultant mixture was cooled to rt, diluted with 150 mL of EtOAc, washed with water (40 mL
X 3), brine, dried over anhydrous sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo. The
solvent was removed in vacuo to provide 135.2 mg desired product: HPLC retention time =
1.84 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5
minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid
72

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
/ 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS
(ES) M+H expect = 261.1, found =261.4.
[0173] Preparation of [3-(azidomethyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid: This
compound was synthesized according to standard hydrolysis protocol as described in
Example 30 using 1 N LiOH: HPLC retention time = 1.94 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 0% to 100% B with
a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B =
0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 233.1, found
=233.4.
[0174] Preparation of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-azidomethyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: This compound was synthesized according to
standard peptide coupling procedure as described below in Examle 43 using HATU as the
coupling reagent: HPLC retention time = 2.36 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 441.2, found
=441.5.
[0175] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-amidomethyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-i]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: To a solution of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-azidomethyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone(0.21 mmol, 1 eq.)
in 2 mL of THF was added dropwise at rt a solution of tris(2-carboxyethyl)phosphine HCl
salt in 0.5 mL of water. The resultant mixture was stirred at rt for 30 min. The reaction
solution was concentrated in vacuo, and the crude residue was diluted with 150 mL of
dichloromethane, washed with 25 mL of water, brine, and dried over sodium sulfate. The
solvent was removed in vacuo, and the crude residue was purified by HPLC to provide 26.2
mg final product: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.17 (dd, 1H), 8.15(dd, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H),
7.12 (dd, 1H), 6.50 (d, 1H), 6.44 (dd, 1H), 5.40 (s, 2H), 4.25 (s, 2H), 3.89 (s, 3H), 3.77 (m,
4H), 3.19 (m, 4H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 416.4.
Example 43
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-sulfonic acid-methyl-
pyrazoIo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.
73

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0176] Preparation of [3-(sulfonic acid-methyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]acetic acid
ethyl ester: A mixture of (3-(bromomethyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl
ester (0.13 mmol, 1 eq.) and sodium sulfite (1.8 mmol, excess) in a mixture of 1 mL of DMF
and 0.5 mL of water was heated at 80 °C for one hour. The resultant solution was cooled to
rt, and the solvent was removed in vacuo. The residue was extracted with 1:1 MeOH :
CH2Cl2 (30 mL X 3). The combined organic extracts were dried in vacuo, and the crude
residue was used without further purification: HPLC retention time = 1.63 minutes (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of
0% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect =
300.1, found =300.5.
[0177] Preparation of [3-(sulfonic acid-methyl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]acetic acid:
This compound was synthesized according to standard hydrolysis protocol as described in
Example 30 using 1 N Li OH as the base. The crude product was used without further
purification.
[0178] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-sulfonic acid-
methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: A mixture of sulfonic acid (100.2 mg,
contain lots of inorganic salt), 1H-4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)piperazine 2x HCl salt
(0.37 mmol, excess), and HATU (0.37 excess) was suspended in 3 mL of pyridine, stirred at
rt for 3 h. The pyridine solvent was removed in vacuo, and the crude residue was extracted
with dichloromethane (10 mL X 3). The organic extracts were removed, and the crude
residue was purified by HPLC to provide 10 mg of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-sulfonic acid-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: HPLC
retention time = 0.28 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
74

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 480.1, found =480.5.
Example 44
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(5-choloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0179] Preparation of (3-iodo-5-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester:
To a solution of (3-iodo-5-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester (0.61, leq.) in
2 mL of DMF was added N-chlorosuccinimide (NCS) (0.73, 1.2 eq.) as a solid. The resultant
mixture was heated at 70 °C for 3 h. The reaction mixture was cooled to rt, and diluted with
250 mL of EtOAc. The diluted mixture was then washed with water (100 mL X 3), brine,
dried over sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified
by silica gel chromatography (15% EtOAc to 75% EtOAc in hexane) to provide 100.4 mg
white solid as final product: HPLC retention time = 2.48 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ,, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 365.9, found
=366.3.
[0180] Preparation of (3-iodo-5-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)acetic acid: This
compound was synthesized according to standard hydrolysis procedure as described in
Example 30 using 1N LiOH: HPLC retention time = 1.78 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 337.9, found
=337.9.
75

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0181] Preparation of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-5-
chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-6]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: The title compound was synthesized
according to standard peptide coupling protocol as described in Example 43 using HATU as
the coupling reagent: HPLC retention time = 2.71 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 546.0, found
=546.4.
[0182] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(5-chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: To a solution of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-5-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone (0.037 mmol, 1
eq.) in 1.5 mL of dichloromethane under a nitrogen atmosphere cooled to -40 °C, was added
dropwise, 30 µl of 2.0 M solution of isopropyl magnesium chloride (0.056 mmol, 1.5 eq.) in
THF. The resultant mixture was for 30 minutes at -40 °C followed by drop wise addition of
an ammonium chloride aqueous (aq) solution at low temperature. The reaction solution was
warmed to rt, diluted with 200 mL of EtOAc, washed with 50 mL of water, brine, dried over
sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified by HPLC
to provide 5 mg final product: lH NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.44 (d, 1H), 8.05(m, 1H), 7.23
(d, 1H), 6.50 (d, 1H), 6.43 (dd, 1H), 5.42 (s, 2H), 3.89 (s, 3H), 3.76 (m, 4H), 3.20 (m, 4H).
LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 421.1.
Example 45
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyrinudine-1-yl)-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-
chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0183] Preparation of 1H-4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine: This compound was
synthesized according to standard hydrazine cyclization protocol as described in Example 1:
76

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
HPLC retention time = 0.36 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 0% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B
(A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 155.0, found =155.0.
[0184] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-1 -yl)-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-
l-yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-2-yl)-ethanone: These compounds were
synthesized using 1H-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrirnidine following the alkylation procedure
as described in Example 6: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-
chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidin6-1-yl)-ethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.76 (s,
1H), 8.22 (s, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.54 (d, 1H), 6.44 (dd, 1H), 5.41 (s, 2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3.77
(m, 4H), 3.23 (m, 4H), LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 421.1: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-
phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(4-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-2-yl)-ethanone; HPLC
retention time = 1.70 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 421.1, found =421.1.
Example 46
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-methoxy-
pyrazoIo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0185] To a solution of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(4-chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyrimidine-1-yl)-ethanone (0.024 mmol, 1 eq.) in 1 mL of MeOH was added
solid potassium carbonate (excess), the resultant mixture was heated at 70 °C for 30 minutes,
then filtered and dried under vacuum. The crude product was purified by HPLC to provide
the desired product as a white powder: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.90 (s, 1H), 8.07 (s,
1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.50 (d, 1H), 6.44 (dd, 1H), 5.29 (s, 2H), 3.90 (s, 3H), 3.81 (m, 4H), 3.19
(m, 4H), 2.25 (s, 3H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 418.9.
77

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 47
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyI)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-
chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone.

[0186] Preparation of (2,6-dichloro-3-pyridinyl)methanol: To a solution of 2,6-dichloro-3-
nicotic acid (9 mmol, 1 eq.) in 10 mL of dry THF at 0 °C, was added NaBH4 (27 mmol, 3
eq.) portion by portion under nitrogen atmosphere. After the evolution of hydrogen gas
subsided (which is observed as bubbling in the reaction mixture), BF3.OMe2 (27 mmol, 3
eq.) was added dropwise to the reaction mixture at 0 °C. The resultant mixture was stirred at
0 °C for 20 minutes followed by the slow addition of sat. NH4Cl aq. solution. The reaction
solution was then warmed to rt, and extracted with 300 mL of EtOAc, and the organic layer
was washed with brine, dried over sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo to
provide a white solid, which was used in subsequent reaction without further purification:
HPLC retention time = 0.71 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 178.0. found =178,0.
[0187] Preparation of 2,6-dichloro-3-formylpyridine: To a solution of the above alcohol (2
mmol, 1 eq.) in 10 mL of dichloromethane was added potassium carbonate (excess) as a
solid, and Dess-Martin periodinate (2 mmol, 1 eq.) at rt. The resultant mixture was stirred at
rt for 30 minutes. A 5% sodium thiosulfate aq. solution was added to the reaction mixture
and the resultant mixture was stirred for another 10 minutes. The reaction mixture was
extracted with 300 mL of EtOAc, and the organic layer was washed with 50 ml of 5% sodium
thiosulfate aq. solution, Sat. sodium bicarbonate aq. solution, brine, and dried over sodium
78

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
sulfate. Evaporation of solvent in vacuo to provide 200.1 mg of the desired product as a
white solid: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 10.37 (s, 1H), 8.17(d, 1H), 7.42 (d, 1H).
[0188] Preparation of 6-choloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine: To a solution of 2,6-dichloro-3-
formylpyridine (0.89 mmol, 1 eq.) in 3 ml THF was added hydrazine (1.06 mmol, 1.2 eq.) at
rt. The resultant solution was heated at 120 °C in sealed tube for overnight. The solvent was
removed in vacuo, and the residue was dry loaded on silica gel column. Purification by silica
gel chromatography provide 29.5 mg final product: HPLC retention time = 2.17 minutes
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute
gradient of 0% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile/ 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES)
M+H expect = 154.0, found =154.0.
[0189] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-chloro-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone and 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -
yl]-2-(6-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: The two title compounds were
synthesized according to the standard coupling procedure described in Example 6: For 1-[4-
(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-
ethanone; 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.08 (s, 1H), 8.01 (d, 1H), 7.25 (d, 1H), 7.16 (d, 1H),
6.50(d, 1H), 6.45 (dd, 1H), 5.40 (s, 2H), 3.90 (s, 3H), 3.77 (m, 4H), 3.23 (m, 4H). LCMS
observed for (M+H)+: 420.5: For 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-
chloro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: HPLC retention time = 1.66 minutes (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile). LCMS observed for
(M+H)+: 420.5.
Example 48
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-azido-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.
79

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0190] Preparation of 1H-6-hydrazo-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyridine: To a solution of 2,6-
dichloro-3-pyridinecarbaldehyde in 2 mL of dioxane was added excess amount of hydrazine.
The resultant solution was heated at 150 °C overnight. Upon cooling to rt, the desired
product precipitated out of solution as a white solid. The crude product was isolated by
filtration, washed with a small amount of dioxane, and dried in vacuo. The crude product
was used without further purification: HPLC retention time = 1.78 minutes (Agilent Zorbax
SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to
100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9%
water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 337.9,
found =337.9.
[0191] Preparation of 1H-6-azido-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyridine: 1H-6-hydrazo-pyrazolo[3,4-
d]pyridine was suspended into a mixture of 5 mL of concentrated HCl and 10 mL of water at
0 o C, and to it was added dropwise a solution of sodium nitrate in 5 mL of water. The
resultant mixture was stirred at 0 °C for 10 min and warmed to rt. The reaction mixture was
neutralized to pH=7~8, and extracted with (200 mL X 2) EtOAc. The combined organic
extract was washed with brine, dried over sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo
to provide the desired product which was used without further purification: HPLC retention
time = 0.50 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5(LT35°C) using lml/min flow
rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1%
formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 161.0, found =160.8.
[0192] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-azido-
pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: The title compound was synthesized according to
alkylation protocol described in Example 6: HPLC retention time = 2.22 minutes (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
80

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect =
427.1, found =427.1.
Example 49
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-amido-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0193] To a solution of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-azido-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone (0.071 mmol, 1 eq.) in 1 mL of EtOAc was added
SnCl2.2H2O as a solid. The resultant mixture was heated at 40 °C for 2 h. The resultant
mixture was cooled to rt and diluted with 200 mL of EtOAc and 50 mL of Sat. sodium
bicarbonate aq. solution. The diluted mixture was stirred for an additional 1 h, before the
organic layer was separated, washed with brine, and dried over sodium sulfate. The solvent
was removed in vacuo, and the residue was purified by HPLC to provide 10 mg title
compound: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 7.86 (s, 1H), 7.74(d, 1H), 7.24 (d, 1H), 7.20 (d,
1H), 6.45(d, 1H), 6.39 (dd, 1H), 5.16 (s, 2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3.89 (m, 4H), 3.13 (m, 4H).
LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 401.1.
Example 50
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yI]-2-(7-amino-pyrazolo[3,4-
c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0194] Preparation of 7-hydrazo-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine: To a solution of 2-chloro-3-
fluoro-4-formylpyridine (5.75 mmol, 1 eq.) in 20 mL of THF was added 1 mL of hydrazine
(excess). The resultant solution was heated at 110 °C in sealed tube for 5 h. The reaction
81

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
was cooled to rt and solvent was removed in vacuo. The crude residue was washed several
times with hexane, EtOAc, and dried in vacuo to provide a light yellow solid, which was used
without further purification: HPLC retention time = 0.20 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.1 % formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 150.1, found
=150.0.
[0195] Preparation of 7-azido-pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine: This compound was synthesized
according to protocol described in Example 48: HPLC retention time = 0.26 minutes
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute
gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid/ 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES)
M+H expect = 161.0, found =160.9.
[0196] Preparation of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazm-1-yl]-2-(7-azido-
pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: This compound was synthesized according to
protocol described in Example 6: HPLC retention time = 2.43 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-
C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100%
B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water,
B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 427.1, found
=427.2.
[0197] Synthesis of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(7-amino-
pyrazolo[3,4-c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone: The title compound was synthesized according to
the procedure outlined in Example 49: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 6 7.86 (s, 1H), 7.74(d,
1H), 7.24 (d, 1H), 7.20 (d, 1H), 6.45(d, 1H), 6.39 (dd, 1H), 5.16 (s, 2H), 3.88 (s, 3H), 3,89
(m, 4H), 3.13 (m, 4H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 401.1.
Example 51
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-(oxazole-2yl)-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridme-2-yl]-ethanone.
82

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0198] Preparation of (3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester: To a
solution of 3-Iodo-2H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (4 mmol, 1 eq.) in 10 mL of dry THF was
added dropwise 0.5 M KHMDS (potassium hexamethyldisilazdde) in toluene (4.4 mmol, 1.1
eq.) at -78°C, under nitrogen atmosphere, and the resultant solution was stirred at for 30
minutes at -78 C. Chloro ethyl acetate (8 mmol, 2eq.) was added dropwise to the reaction
solution and the reaction solution was warmed to rt over 1.5 hour and stirred overnight.
Following an aqueous workup, the crude product was purified by silica gel chromatography
(20% EtOAc in hexane to 70% EtOAc in hexane) to provide 70.2 mg of (3-iodo-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)acetic acid ethyl ester: HPLC retention time = 2.63 minutes
(Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute
gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5%
acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.08% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES)
M+H expect = 332.0, found =332.1.
[0199] Preparation of (3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)acetic acid: This compound
was synthesized according to the standard ester hydrolysis protocol as described in Example
30 using IN LiOH as the base. The crude product was used in the next step without
purification: HPLC retention time = 1.02 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ,
35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute
wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.08% formic
acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 303.0, found =303.5.
[0200] Preparation of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-iodo-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone: This compound was synthesized according to
standard peptide coupling protocol using HATU as the coupling reagent: HPLC retention
time = 297 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow
rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1 %
formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.08% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9%
acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 512.0, found =512.5.
83

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0201] Synthesis of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-[3-(oxazole-2yl)-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl]-ethanone: To a mixture of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-2-yl)-ethanone (0.071 mmol, leq.) and
tetrakis triphenylphosphine palladium (0.025 mmol, 0.35 eq.) under nitrogen atmosphere was
added 0.5 mL of THF and 2-oxazole-(tri-n-butyl)Tin (0.48 mmol, 6.7 eq.). The resultant
mixture was heated in a sealed tube at 80 °C for 48 h. The reaction solution was cooled to rt,
diluted with 30 mL of NH4Cl sat. aq. solution, and extracted with 300 mL.of EtOAc. The
organic layer was separated, washed with brine, dried over sodium sulfate, filtered and
concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified by silica gel chromatography (0% to
15% MeOH in EtOAc) to provide 12.3 mg the title compound: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3)
8 8.77 (dd, 1H), 8.51(dd, 1H), 7.81 (d, 1H), 7.22 (m, 3H), 6.52(d, 1H), 6.48 (dd, 1H), 6,01 (s,
2H), 3.9 0(s, 3H), 3.80 (m, 4H), 3.27 (m, 4H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 453.5.
Example 52
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(5-amino-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone.

[0202] Preparation of 3-methyl-5-nitro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine: 3-Methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine (1 mmol, 1 eq.) was suspended into a mixture of 1:1 fuming nitric acid and
concentrated sulfuric acid (1 mL :1 mLV and the resultant mixture was heated at 90 °C for 30
minutes. The reaction mixture was then cooled to rt, and poured into a mixture of sodium
bicarbonate and ice. The resultant solution was warmed up to rt and extracted with 300 mL
of EtOAc. The organic extract was separated, washed with brine, dried over sodium sulfate,
filtered, and concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was purified by silica gel
chromatography to provide 70.2 mg of 3-methyl-5-nitro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine.
[0203] Preparation of 1 -[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(5-nitro-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone: This compound was synthesized from 3-methyl-5-
84

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
nitro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine according to the alkylation protocol described in Example 6:
HPLC retention time = 1.46 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1 X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using
lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100%
B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 445.1, found =445.1.
[0204] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(5-amino-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone: 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-
2-(5-nitro-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone (15 mg) is combined with 200 mg of iron
powder in 2 mL of acetic acid at 100 °C for 30 min. After cooling to rt, the reaction solution
was diluted with EtOAc and filtered. The filtrate was evaporated in vacuo and purified by
HPLC to provide 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(5-amino-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone: HPLC retention time = 1.46 minutes (Agilent
Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of
20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile /
94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect =
414.2, found =415.1.
Example 53
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-amino-6-methyl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone.

[0205] Preparation of 1H-3-amino-6-methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyridine: This compound was
synthesized according to the cyclization procedure using hydrazine described in Example 3
and the crude product was used in the next step without further purification.
[0206] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-amino-6-
methyl-pyrazolo[3,4-d]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone: This compound was synthesized according
to the standard coupling procedure described in Example 6: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3)
7.75 (d, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.86 (d, 1H), 6.48 (d, 1H), 6.42(dd, 1H), 5.18 (s, 2H), 3.89 (s, 3H),
3.75 (m, 4H), 3.16 (m, 4H), 2.62 (s, 3H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 415.5.
85

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Example 54
Synthesis of 1-[(S)-4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-
(3-[1,2,4]oxadiazol-3-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)ethanone.

[0207] Preparation of 1-[(S)-4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-
1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: A mixture of 2-Chloro-1-[(S)-4-(4-
chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-ethanone (1.37 g, 4:08 mmol, 1
eq), 3-Iodo-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (1.0 g, 4.08 mmol, 1 eq), potassium carbonate (2.26
g, 16.4 mmol, 4 eq), and DMF (15 ml) was stirred overnight at 90 °C. The reaction solution
was diluted with ethyl acetate, washed with saturated aqueous NaHCO3, and concentrated in
vacuo. The crude product was purified by flash chromatography to provide 1-[(S)-4-(4-
Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (2.2 g).
[0208] Preparation of 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carbonitrile: A mixture of 1-
[(S)-4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (2.2 g, 4.0 mmol, 1 eq), CuCN (3.6 g, 40 mmol, 10
eq), and DMF (25 ml) was stirred at 175 °C for 1 hrs. The reaction mixture was cooled to rt,
diluted with ethyl acetate and filtered. The filtrate was washed with water, dried over
Na2SO4, and purified by flash chromatography to provide 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-
methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-
carbonitrile(1.6 g).
[0209] Preparation of 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-
1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-N-hydroxy-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carboxamidine: A mixture of
1- {2-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-(S)-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-
86

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carbonitrile (1.6 g, 3.6 mmol, 1 eq), NH2OH.HCl (0.84 g, 10.8
mmol, 3 eq), TEA (1.5 ml), and ethanol (10 ml) was stirred at 65 °C overnight. The reaction
solution was concentrated in vacuo, and dissolved in ethyl acetate, washed with brine, and
concentrated to provide 1-{2-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-
1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-N-hydroxy-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carboxamidine (1.2 g).
[0210] Preparation of 1 -[(S)-4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1 -yl]-
2-(3-[1,2,4]oxadiazol-3-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: A mixture of 1-{2-[4-(4-
Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-yl]-2-oxo-ethyl}-N-hydroxy-1H-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-3-carboxamidine ( 1.2 g), trimethyl orthoformate (20 ml) and para-
toluene sulfonic acid (PTSA) (0.1 g) was stirred at 100 °C overnight. The reaction mixture
was concentrated in vacuo to provide a crude residue which was purified by flash
chromatography to provide 1-[(S)-4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-m6thoxy-phenyl)-2-methyl-piperazin-1-
yl]-2-3-[1,2,4]oxadiazol-3-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (0.7 g). LCMS Retention
time: 2.61 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using 1ml/min flow rate, a
2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic
acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile).
LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 486.
Example 55
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-cyano-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0211] A solution of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-cyano-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone (0.15 mmol, 1 eq.) and hydroxyl amine HCl salt
(0.45 mmol, 3 eq.) in 2.5 mL of EtOH was heated at 60 °C for 1 h. The reaction mixture was
cooled to rt, and concentrated in vacuo. The crude residue was dissolved with 200 mL of
dichloromethane, washed with 50 mL of 5% K2CO3 aq. solution, brine solution, dried over
sodium sulfate, filtered and concentrated in vacuo to provide the desired product as a white
solid: HPLC retention time = 1.61 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C)
using 1ml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 minute wash at
87

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
100% B (A = 0.1 % formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1 % formic acid / 5%
water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 444.1, found =444.5.
Example 56
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-(oxadiazole-3-yl)-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone.

[0212] To a suspension of (0.067 mmol, 1 eq.) of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-cyano-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone in 2 mL of
trimethylorthoformate was added camphorsulfonic acid (CSA) (5.0 mg, catalytic amount).
The resultant mixture was heated at 50 °C for 10 minutes and cooled to rt. The reaction
solution was concentration in vacuo to provide a crude residue which was purified by HPLC
chromatography to provide 20.0 mg of the title compound: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 6
8.83 (s, 1H), 8.62(dd, 1H), 7.35 (dd, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.51 (d, 1H), 6.44 (dd, 1H), 5.59 (s,
2H), 3.89 (s, 3H), 3.79 (m, 4H), 3.23 (m, 4H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 454.5.
Example 57
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-[3-(5-methyl-
oxadiazole-3-yl)-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl]-ethanone.

[0213] The title compound was synthesized according to the cyclization procedure using
trimethylorthoacetate as described in Example 56: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 5 8.61 (dd,
1H), 7.31(dd, 1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.54 (d, 1H), 6.42 (dd, 1H), 5.57 (s, 2H), 3.89 (s, 3H), 3.77
(m, 4H), 3.21 (m, 4H), 2.69 (s, 1H). LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 468.5.
Example 58
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl] -2-(6-acetimido-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.
88

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313

[0214] 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(6-amido-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone, acetic anhydride (1.2 equiv) and pyridine (3 equiv) was combined
in DCM at rt for 30 min: HPLC retention time = 1.82 minutes (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18,
2.1X50 mm, 5µ, 35°C) using lml/min flow rate, a 2.5 minute gradient of 20% to 100% B
witha 1.1 minute wash at 100% B (A = 0.1% formic acid/ 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B
= 0.08% formic acid / 5% water/ 94.9% acetonitrile); MS (ES) M+H expect = 443.1, found
=442.8.
Example 59
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-methylsulfonyl-
pyrazolo[4,3-c]pyridine-1-yl)-ethanone.

[0215] The title compound was synthesized from 1-[4-(4-Chloro-3-methoxy-phenyl)-
piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone according to the protocol
described in Example 41: 1H NMR (400 MHz, CDCl3) 8.65 (d, 1H), 8.48 (d, 1H), 7.39 (dd,
1H), 7.22 (d, 1H), 6.51 (s, 1H), 6.44(d, 1H), 5.53 (s, 2H), 3.91 (s, 3H), 3.78 (m, 4H), 3.34 (s,
3H), 3.22 (m, 4H), LCMS observed for (M+H)+: 415.0.
Example 60
Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-
yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyriuin-1-yl)-ethanone.

89

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0216] Preparation of Ethyl (3 -Iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetate: To a mixture of
3-iodo-1H-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridine (9.8 g, 40 mrnol, 1 equiv) and potassium carbonate (27.6
g, 5 equiv) in 15 mL of DMF at 90 °C was added ethyl chloroacetate (8.5 mL, 40 mmol, 1
equiv). Two hours later, the reaction mixture was diluted with ethyl acetate followed by
washing with saturated aqueous NaHCO3, The organic layer was dried and concentrated to
provide the crude product. Purification of the crude product by flash chromatography gave
ethyl (3-Iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetate (11g).
[0217] Preparation of (3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetic acid: Ethyl (3-Iodo-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetate (11 g, 33 mmol, 1 equiv) was dissolved in 50 mL of
THF and 50 mL of MeOH to the solution was added 40 mL of 1N LiOH for 3h. The organic
solvents were evaporated and the remaining aqueous phase was neutralized with 1N HCl to a
pH of about 1 which resulted in the precipitation of the desired product as a white solid was
filtered and air dried to give (3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetic acid.
[0218] Preparation of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-
iodo-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: A mixture of (3-iodo-pyrazolo[3,4-
b]pyridin-1-yl)-acetic acid (3.03 g, 10 mmol, 1 equiv), 1-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-
phenyl)-piperazine (2.45 g, 1 equiv), BOP reagent (4.86 g, 1 equiv), triethylamine (4.2 mL, 3
equiv) in 10 mL of MF was stirred at rt overnight. To the reaction mixture was then added
water and the solid precipitates were removed by filtration and air dried to give 1-[4-(4-
Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-2-yI-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-
yl)-ethanone. LCMS (ES) observed for M+H 530.0.
[0219] Synthesis of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-
oxazol-2-yl-pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone: To a solution of oxazole (690 mg 10
mmol, 2.5 equiv) in tetrahydrofuran (5 mL) under nitrogen atmosphere, was added dropwise
72-butyl lithium (2.5 M in Hexane, 4.8 mL, 3 equiv.). The resultant mixture was stirred at -78
°C for an additional 60 min followed by the addition of ZnCl2 (0.5 M in THF, 32 mL, 4
equiv.). The reaction solution was allowed to warm to 0 °C and stirred 1 h followed by the
addition of 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-fluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-iodo-2-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone (2.12 g, 4 mmol, 1 equiv) and palladium
tetrakis(triphenylphosphine) (462 mg, 0.1 equiv). The reaction mixture was then heated to
reflux forl2 hr, cooled to room temperature and diluted with ethyl acetate. The reaction
mixture was washed with water, brine, dried over sodium sulfate, and concentrated in vacuo
90

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
to provide the crude product. Purification by flash chromatography provided of the desired
product 1-[4-(4-Chloro-2-iluoro-5-methoxy-phenyl)-piperazin-1-yl]-2-(3-oxazol-2-yl-
pyrazolo[3,4-b]pyridin-1-yl)-ethanone as a white powder (1.03 g). LCMS (ES) observed for
M+H 471.1. HPLC retention time = 2.4 min (Agilent Zorbax SB-C18, 2.1 x 50 mm, 5µ, 35
°C, 1mL/min flow rate, a 2.5 min gradient of 20% to 100% B with a 1.1 min wash at 100%
B; A= 0.1% formic acid / 5% acetonitrile / 94.9% water, B = 0.1% formic acid / 5% water/
94.9% acetonitrile).
Example 61
[0220] This example illustrates the the evaluation of the biological activity associated with
compounds of interest (candidate compounds) of the invention.
MATERIALS AND METHODS
A. Cells
1. CCR1 expressing cells
a) THP-1 cells
[0221] THP-1 cells were obtained from ATCC (TIB-202) and cultured as a suspension in
RPMI-1640 medium supplemented with 2 mM L-glutamine, 1.5 g/L sodium bicarbonate, 4.5
g/L glucose, 10 mM HEPES, 1 mM sodium pyruvate, 0.05% 2-mercaptoethanol and 10%
FBS. Cells were grown under 5% CO2/95% air, 100% humidity at 37°C and subcultured
twice weekly at 1:5 (cells were cultured at a density range of 2x10 to 2x10 cells/mL) and
harvested at 1 x 106 cells/mL. THP-1 cells express CCR1 and can be used in CCR1 binding
and functional assays.
b) Isolated human monocytes
[0222] Monocytes were isolated from human buffy coats using the Miltenyi bead isolation
system (Miltenyi, Auburn, CA). Briefly, following a Ficoll gradient separation to isolate
peripheral blood mononuclear cells, cells were washed with PBS and the red blood cells
lysed using standard procedures. Remaining cells were labeled with anti-CD 14 antibodies
coupled to magnetic beads (Miltenyi Biotech, Auburn, CA). Labeled cells were passed
through AutoMACS (Miltenyi, Auburn, CA) and positive fraction collected. Monocytes
express CCR1 and can be used in CCR1 binding and functional assays.
91

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
B. Assays
1. Inhibition of CCR1 ligand binding
[0223] CCR1 expressing cells were centrifuged and resuspended in assay buffer (20 mM
HEPES pH 7.1,140 mM NaCl, 1 mM CaCl2, 5 mM MgCl2, and with 0.2% bovine serum
albumin) to a concentration of 5 x 106 cells/mL for THP-1 cells and 5 x 105 for monocytes.
Binding assays were set up as follows. 0.1 mL of cells (5 x 105 THP-1 cells/well or 5 x 104
monocytes) was added to the assay plates containing the compounds, giving a final
concentration of ~2-10 µM each compound for screening (or part of a dose response for
compound IC50 determinations). Then 0.1 mL of I25I labeled MIP-1α (obtained from Perkin
Elmer Life Sciences, Boston, MA) or 0.1 mL of 125I labeled CCL15/leukotactin (obtained as
a custom radiolabeling by Perkin Elmer Life Sciences, Boston, MA) diluted in assay buffer to
a final concentration of ~50 pM, yielding -30,000 cpm per well, was added (using I25I
labeled MlP-1α with THP-1 cells and I25I labeled CCL15/leukotactin with monocytes), the
plates sealed and incubated for approximately 3 hours at 4°C on a shaker platform. Reactions
were aspirated onto GF/B glass filters pre-soaked in 0.3% polyethyleneimine (PEI) solution,
on a vacuum cell harvester (Packard Instruments; Meriden, CT). Scintillation fluid (40 µl;
Microscint 20, Packard Instruments) was added to each well, the plates were sealed and
radioactivity measured in a Topcount scintillation counter (Packard Instruments). Control
wells containing either diluent only (for total counts) or excess MlP-1α or MIP-1β (1 µg/mL,
for non-specific binding) were used to calculate the percent of total inhibition for compound.
The computer program Prism from GraphPad, Inc. (San Diego, Ca) was used to calculate
IC50 values. IC50 values are those concentrations required to reduce the binding of labeled
MIP-1α to the receptor by 50%. . (For further descriptions of ligand binding and other
functional assays, see Dairaghi, et al., J. Biol. Ckem. 274:21569-21574 (1999), Penfold, et
al., Proc. Natl. Acad. Sci. USA. 96:9839-9844 (1999), and Dairaghi, et al,. J. Biol. Chem.
272:28206-28209 (1997)).
2. Calcium mobilization
[0224] To detect the release of intracellular stores of calcium, cells (THP-1 or monocytes)
were incubated with 3 µM of INDO-1 AM dye (Molecular Probes; Eugene, OR) in cell media
for 45 minutes at room temperature and washed with phosphate buffered saline (PBS). After
92

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
INDO-1 AM loading, the cells were resuspended in flux buffer (Hank's balanced salt solution
(HBSS) and 1% FBS). Calcium mobilization was measured using a Photon Technology
International spectrophotometer (Photon Technology International; New Jersey) with
excitation at 350 nm and dual simultaneous recording of fluorescence emission at 400 nm and
490 nm. Relative intracellular calcium levels were expressed as the 400 nm/490 nm emission
ratio. Experiments were performed at 37°C with constant mixing in cuvettes each containing
106 cells in 2 mL of flux buffer. The chemokine ligands may be used over a range from 1 to
100 nM. The emission ratio was plotted over time (typically 2-3 minutes). Candidate ligand
blocking compounds (up to 10 µM) were added at 10 seconds, followed by chemokines at 60
seconds (i.e., MlP-1α; R&D Systems; Minneapolis, MN) and control chemokine (i.e., SDF-
1α; R&D Systems; Minneapolis, MN) at 150 seconds.
3. Chemotaxis assays
[0225] Chemotaxis assays were performed using 5 fm pore polycarbonate,
polyvinylpyrrolidone-coated filters in 96-well chemotaxis chambers (Neuroprobe;
Gaithersburg, MD) using chemotaxis buffer (Hank's balanced salt solution (HBSS) and 1%
FBS). CCR1 chemokine ligands (i.e., MlP-1α, CCL15/Leukotactin; R&D Systems;
Minneapolis, MN) are use to evaluate compound mediated inhibition of CCR1 mediated
migration. Other chemokines (i.e., SDF-1α; R&D Systems; Minneapolis, MN) are used as
specificity controls. The lower chamber was loaded with 29 µl of chemokine (i.e., 0.1 nM
CCL15/Leukotactin) and varying amounts of compound; the top chamber contained 100,000
THP-1 or monocyte cells in 20 p.1. The chambers were incubated 1-2 hours at 37°C, and the
number of cells in the lower chamber quantified either by direct cell counts in five high
powered fields per well or by the CyQuant assay (Molecular Probes), a fluorescent dye
method thai measures nucleic acid content and microscopic observation.
C. Identification of inhibitors of CCR1
1. Assay
[0226] To evaluate small organic molecules that prevent the receptor CCR1 from binding
ligand, an assay was employed that detected radioactive ligand (i.e, MIP-1α or
CCL15/Leukotactin) binding to cells expressing CCR1 on the cell surface (for example,
93

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
THP-1 cells or isolated human monocytes). For compounds that inhibited binding, whether
competitive or not, fewer radioactive counts are observed when compared to uninhibited
controls.
[0227] THP-1 cells and monocytes lack other chemokine receptors that bind the same set of
chemokine ligands as CCR1 (i.e., MIP-1α, MPIF-1, Leukotactin, etc.). Equal numbers of
cells were added to each well in the plate. The cells were then incubated with radiolabeled
MIP-1α. Unbound ligand was removed by washing the cells, and bound ligand was
determined by quantifying radioactive counts. Cells that were incubated without any organic
compound gave total counts; non-specific binding was determined by incubating the cells
with unlabeled ligand and labeled ligand. Percent inhibition was determined by the equation:

2. Dose Response Curves
[0228] To ascertain a candidate compound's affinity for CCR1 as well as confirm its ability
to inhibit ligand binding, inhibitory activity was titered over a 1 x 10-10 to 1 x 10-4 M range of
compound concentrations. In the assay, the amount of compound was varied; while cell
number and ligand concentration were held constant.
3. CCR1 functional assays
[0229] CCR1 is a seven transmembrane, G-protein linked receptor. A hallmark of
signaling cascades induced by the ligation of some such receptors is the pulse-like release of
calcium ions from intracellular stores. Calcium mobilization assays were performed to
determine if the candidate CCR1 inhibitory compounds were able to also block aspects of
CCR1 signaling. Candidate compounds able to inhibit ligand binding and signaling with an
enhanced specificity over other chemokine and non-chemokine receptors were desired.
[0230] Calcium ion release in response to CCR1 chemokine ligands (i.e., MlP-1α, MPEF-1,
Leukotactin, etc.) was measured using the calcium indicator INDO-1. THP-1 cells or
monocytes were loaded with INDO-1/AM and assayed for calcium release in response to
94

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
CCR1 chemokine ligand (i.e., MlP-1α) addition. To control for specificity, non-CCR1
ligands, specifically bradykinin, was added, which also signals via a seven transmembrane
receptor. Without compound, a pulse of fluorescent signal will be seen upon MlP-la
addition. If a compound specifically inhibits CCR1-MIP-1α signaling, then little or no signal
pulse will be seen upon MIP-1α addition, but a pulse will be observed upon bradykinin
addition. However, if a compound non-specifically inhibits signaling, then no pulse will be
seen upon both MIP-1 a and bradykinin addition.
[0231] One of the primary functions of chemokines is their ability to mediate the migration
of chemokine receptor-expressing cells, such as white blood cells. To confirm that a
candidate compound inhibited not only CCR1 specific binding and signaling (at least as
determined by calcium mobilization assays), but also CCR1 mediated migration, a
chemotaxis assay was employed. THP-1 myelomonocytic leukemia cells, which resemble
monocytes, as wells as freshly isolated monocytes, were used as targets for chemoattraction
by CCR1 chemokine ligands (i.e., MIP-1α, CCL15/leukotactin). Cells were place in the top
compartment of a microwell migration chamber, while MlP-1α (or other potent CCR1
chemokine ligand) and increasing concentrations of a candidate compound was loaded in the
lower chamber. In the absence of inhibitor, cells will migrate to the lower chamber in
response to the chemokine agonist; if a compound inhibited CCR1 function, then the majority
of cells will remain in the upper chamber. To ascertain a candidate compound's affinity for
CCR1 as well as to confirm its ability to inhibit CCR1 mediated cell migration, inhibitory
activity was titered over a 1 x 10-10 to 1 x 10-4 M range of compound concentrations in this
chemotaxis assay. In this assay, the amount of compound was varied; while cell number and
chemokine agonist concentrations were held constant. After the chemotaxis chambers were
incubated 1-2 hours at 37°C, the responding cells in the lower chamber were quantified by
labeling with the CyQuant assay (Molecular Probes), a fluorescent dye method that measures
nucleic acid content, and by measuring with a Spectrafluor Plus (Tecan). The computer
program Prism from GraphPad, Inc. (San Diego, Ca) was used to calculate IC50 values. IC50
values are those compound concentrations required to inhibit the number of cells responding
to a CCR1 agonist by 50%.
95

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
4. In Vivo Efficacy
a) Rabbit model of destructive joint inflammation
[0232] To study the effects of candidate compounds on inhibiting the inflammatory
response of rabbits to an intra-articular injection of the bacterial membrane component
lipopolysaccharide (LPS), a rabbit model of destructive joint inflammation is used. This
study design mimics the destructive joint inflammation seen in arthritis. Intra-articular
injection of LPS causes an acute inflammatory response characterized by the release of
cytokines and chemokines, many of which have been identified in rheumatoid arthritic joints.
Marked increases in leukocytes occur in synovial fluid and in synovium in response to
elevation of these chemotactic mediators. Selective antagonists of chemokine receptors have
shown efficacy in this model (see Podolin, et al., J. Immunol. 169(ll):6435-6444 (2002)).
[0233] A rabbit LPS study is conducted essentially as described in Podolin, et al. ibid.,
female New Zealand rabbits (approximately 2 kilograms) are treated intra-articularly in one
knee with LPS (10 ng) together with either vehicle only (phosphate buffered saline with 1%
DMSO) or with addition of CCX-105 (dose 1 = 50 µM or dose 2 = 100 uM) in a total volume
of 1.0 mL. Sixteen hours after the LPS injection, knees are lavaged and cells counts are
performed. Beneficial effects of treatment were determined by histopathologic evaluation of
synovial inflammation. Inflammation scores are used for the histopathologic evaluation: 1 -
minimal, 2 - mild, 3 - moderate, 4 - moderate-marked.
b) Evaluation of a candidate compound in a rat model of collagen
induced arthritis
[0234] A 17 day developing type II collagen arthritis study is conducted to evaluate the
effects of a candidate compound on arthritis induced clinical ankle swelling. Rat collagen
arthritis is an experimental model of polyarthritis that has been widely used for preclinical
testing of numerous anti-arthritic agents (see Trentham, et al., J. Exp. Med. 146(3):857-868
(1977), Bendele, et al., Toxicologic Pathol 27:134-142 (1999), Bendele, et al., Arthritis
Rheum. 42:498-506 (1999)). The hallmarks of this model are reliable onset and progression
of robust, easily measurable polyarticular inflammation, marked cartilage destruction in
association with pannus formation and mild to moderate bone resorption and periosteal bone
proliferation.
96

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
[0235] Female Lewis rats (approximately 0.2 kilograms) are anesthetized with isoflurane
and injected with Freund's Incomplete Adjuvant containing 2 mg/mL bovine type II collagen
at the base of the tail and two sites on the back on days 0 and 6 of this 17 day study. A
candidate compound is dosed daily in a sub-cutaneous manner from day 0 till day 17 at a
efficacious dose. Caliper measurements of the ankle joint diameter were taken, and reducing
joint swelling is taken as a measure of efficacy.
[0236] In the table below, structures and activity are provided for representative
compounds described herein. Activity is provided as follows for either the chernotaxis assay
or binding assay as described above: +, IC50 > 12.5 uM; ++, 2500 nM 1000 nM 97
Table 2


WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table2(cont'd.)

98

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

99

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

100

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
101
Table 2 (cont'd.)


WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

102

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

103

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

104

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table2(cont'd.)

105

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Table 2 (cont'd.)

106

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
WHAT IS CLAIMED IS:
1. A compound having a formula selected from the group consisting of:

or a pharmaceutically acceptable salt, hydrate or N-oxide thereof, wherein
R1 is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -S(O)3Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2R3, -X1S(O)3Ra, -X1OR3,
-CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb, -X1NRaCORb, -X1CONRaRb, X1S(O)2NRaRb,
X1S(O)2Ra, -ORa, -NRaRb, -NRaCORb, -CONRaRb, -NRaS(O)2Rb, -S(O)2NRaRb,
-S(O)2Ra, -X1CORa, X1CONRaRb, and -X1NRaS(O)2Rb, wherein X1 is C1-4
alkylene and each Ra and Rb is independently selected from the group consisting
of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, or optionally Ra and Rb
when attached to the same nitrogen atom are combined to form a 3- to 7-
membered ring having from 0-2 additional heteroatoms as ring members; and
wherein the aliphatic portions of each of said R1 substituents is optionally
substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of
-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm,
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2)
-NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(=NH)NH2, -NHC(=NRm)NH2,
-NRmC(=NRm)N(Rm)2, -NRmC(=NRni)NH(Rm), -NHC(=NRm)NH(Rm),
-NHC(=NRm)N(Rm)2, -NHC(=NH)N(Rm)2, -NHC(=NH)NH(Rm), -C(=NH)NH2,
-C(=NRm)NH2, -C(=NRm)N(Rm)2, -C(=NRm)NH(Rm), -NHC(O)NHRm,
-NRmC(O)N(Rm)2) -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm,
-CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2, -NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm,
wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl;
R2a, R2c and R2d are each independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen,
halogen, cyano, aryl, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2RC, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -S(O)Rc, -
S(O)2Rc, -S(O)3Rc, -Rc, -C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRCV)=NV, -N(V)C(RC)=NV,
107

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -
X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC5 -X2CONR°Rd, -X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -
X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc, -X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH,
-X2NReC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc, -X2NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -
X2S(O)2Rc, -X2Rc(O)2R6, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3, -ORc, -SRc, -NRdC(O)Rc, -
NRdC(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)3Rc, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -X2NRcRd,
-O-X2NRcRd, -NRd-X2CO2Rc, -NRc-C(O)NRcRd, -NH-C(NH2)=NH,
-NRcC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRc, -NH-C(NHRc)NH, -NRcC(NHRc)NH,
-NRcC(NH2)=NRc, -NH-C(NHRc)=NRc, -NH-C(NRcRc)=NH, NRcS(O)2Rc,
-NRcC(S)NRcRd, -X2NRcC(S)NRcRd5 -X2OC(O)RC, -O-X2CONRcRd, -OC(O)Rc, -
NRcRd, -NRd-X2ORc and -NRd-X2NRcRd; wherein
within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is C1-4 alkylene and each Rc and Rd is independently
selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, or optionally,
Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the
nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional
heteroatoms as ring members; and each Rc is independently selected from the
group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8
alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each of Rc, Rd and Rc is optionally further
substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of
-OH, -ORn, -OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn, -S(O)2Rn,
-SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn, -S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)2Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2, -C(O)Rn, -NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn, -NRnC(O)N(Rn)2,
-NHC(O)N(Rn)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2, -NH2,
-NHRn, -N(Rn)2, -NRnS(O)NH2 and -NRnS(O)2NHRn, wherein each Rn is
independently an unsubstiruted C1-6 alkyl; and wherein V is independently
selected from the group consisting of-Rc, -CN, -CO2Rc and -NO2;
each of ring vertices a, b, c and d in formulae Ia and Ib is independently selected from N
and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and
R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf,
-OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf,
-OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -NH-C(NH2)=NH,
108

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -C(=NRf)NRgRh,
-S(O)3Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -S(O)3Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2Rh,
-NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg, -X3SO3Rf, -X3C(=NRf)NRgRh,
-X3ORf, -X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfR6, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -X3NO2, -X3CO2Rf,
-X3CONRfR8, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3OC(O)NRfRg, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)2Rh,
-X3NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)=NH, -X3NH-
C(NH2)=NRh, -X3NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh,
-X3S(O)2NRfR8, -Y, -X3Y, -X3N3, -C(O)NRfS(O)Rh, -P=O(ORf)(ORg),
-X3C(O)NRfS(O)2Rh, -X3C(O)NRfS(O)Rh and -X3P=O(ORf)(ORg), wherein Y is a
five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally
substituted with from one to three substitutents selected from the group consisting
of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRe, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -
NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -X3NRfRg, -
X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg, and wherein each X3 is independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4 alkenylene and C2-4
alkynylene and each Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl,
aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl, or when attached to the same nitrogen atom
can be combined with the nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring
having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms as ring members, and each Rh is
independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-
C1-4 alkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally
further substituted with from one to three members selected from the group
consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°,
-S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(Ro)2) -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2) -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°,
-NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2Ro, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°,
-CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein
R° is unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
2. A compound of claim 1, wherein R1 is independently selected from the
group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, -CO2Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra,
109

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
-X1ORa, -CORa, -CONRaRb, -X1NRaRb, -X1NRaCORb, -X1CONRaRb, X1S(O)2NRaRb and
X1S(O)2Ra, wherein X1 is C1-4 alkylene and each Ra and Rb is independently selected from the
group consisting of hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, and wherein the
aliphatic portions of each of said R1 substituents is optionally substituted with from one to
three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm,
-OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm, -S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2,
-NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm,
-NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRm,
-NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2, -CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2, -NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is
independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl;
R2a, R2c and R2d are each independently selected from the group consisting of
hydrogen, halogen, cyano, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2Rc, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -S(O)Rc, -
S(O)2Rc, -Rc, -C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd,
-X2C(NRcV)=NV, -X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcNd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC,
-X2CONRcRd, -X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc,
-X2NRcC(O)NRcRd, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc,
-X2NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -X2NRcS(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2N3,
-ORC, -SRC, -Rc, -NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORC, -O-X2ORC, -
X2NRcRd, -O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc; wherein
within each of R2a, R2c and R2d, X2 is CM alkylene and each Rc and Rd is
independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, or
optionally, Rc and Rd when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the
nitrogen atom to form a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms
as ring members; and each Re is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8
alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl and heteroaryl, and each
of Rc, Rd and Re is optionally further substituted with from one to three members selected
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORn, -OC(O)NHRn, -OC(O)N(Rn)2, -SH, -SRn, -S(O)Rn,
-S(O)2Rn, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRn, -S(O)2N(Rn)2, -NHS(O)2Rn, -NRnS(O)2Rn, -C(O)NH2,
-C(O)NHRn, -C(O)N(Rn)2, -C(O)Rn, -NHC(O)Rn, -NRnC(O)Rn, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRnC(O)NH2, -NRnC(O)NHRn, -NHC(O)NHRn, -NRnC(O)N(Rn)2, -NHC(O)N(Rn)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rn, -NHCO2Rn, -NRnCO2Rn, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRn, -N(Rn)2, -NRnS(O)NH2
and -NRnS(O)2NHRn, wherein each Rn is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl; and
110

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
wherein V is independently selected from the group consisting of-Rc, -CN, -CO2Rc and
-NO2;
each of ring vertices a, b, c and d in formulae la and Ib is independently
selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N;
R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen,
-ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg,
-NRgC(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -NH-C(NH2)=NH, -NRhC(NH2)=NH, -NH-
C(NH2)=NRh, -NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -
NRfS(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -N3, -X3ORf, -X3OC(O)Rf, -X3NRfRg, -X3SRf, -X3CN, -
X3NO2, -X3CO2Rf, -X3CONRfRE, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3OC(O)NRfRg, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -
X3NRgC(O)2Rh, -X3NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -X3NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X3NRhC(NH2)=NH, -X3NH-
C(NH2)=NRh, -X3NH-C(NHRh)=NH, -X3S(O)Rh, -X3S(O)2Rh, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh,
-X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Y, -X3Yand -X3N3, wherein Y is a five to ten-membered aryl, heteroaryl or
heterocycloalkyl ring, optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected
from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf,
-CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -
X3NRfRg, -X3NRfS(O)2Rh and -X3S(O)2NRfRg, and wherein each X3 is independently
selected from the group consisting of C1-4 alkylene, C2-4 alkenylene and C2-4 alkynylene and
each Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl,
or when attached to the same nitrogen atom can be combined with the nitrogen atom to form
a five or six-membered ring having from 0 to 2 additional heteroatoms as ring members, and
each Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, C2-8 alkynyl, aryl, heteroaryl, aryl-C1-4 alkyl, and aryloxy-C1-4 alkyl,
wherein the aliphatic portions of X3, Rf, Rg and Rh are optionally further substituted with
from one to three members selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°,
-OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2,
-NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°,
-NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°,
-NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2,
-NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6
alkyl.
111

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
3. A compound of claim 1 or 2, wherein in formula Ib, wherein when R2a
is H, R2c is chloro, R2d is methoxy, m is 0, a is N, c is CH or N, and b and d are CH, then R3a
is other than hydrogen, methyl, unsubstituted 2-pyridyl, unsubstituted 2-pyrimidinyl or
unsubstituted 2-oxazolyl.
4. A compound of claim 1, wherein each R1 is a substiruent
independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl,
-CO2Ra, -X1CO2Ra, -X1SO2Ra, -X1S(O)3Ra and -X1ORa, wherein the aliphatic portions of
each of said R1 substituents is optionally substituted with from one to three members selected
from the group consisting of-OH, -ORm, -OC(O)NHRm, -OC(O)N(Rm)2, -SH, -SRm,
-S(O)Rm, -S(O)2Rm, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHRm, -S(O)2N(Rm)2, -NHS(O)2Rm, -NRmS(O)2Rm,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHRm, -C(O)N(Rm)2, -C(O)Rm, -NHC(O)Rm, -NRmC(O)Rm, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NRraC(O)NH2, -NRmC(O)NHRm, -NHC(O)NHRm, -NRmC(O)N(Rm)2, -NHC(O)N(Rm)2,
-CO2H, -CO2Rm, -NHCO2Rm, -NRmCO2Rm, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHRm, -N(Rm)2,
-NRmS(O)NH2 and -NRmS(O)2NHRm, wherein each Rm is independently an unsubstituted C1-
6 alkyl;
R2a is a substiruent selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen,
cyano, heteroaryl, -NO2, -CO2Rc, -CONRcRd, -C(O)Rc, -S(O)Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)3RC, -Rc,
-C(NORc)Rd, -C(NRcV)=NV, -N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2C(NORc)Rd, -X2C(NRCV)=NV,
-X2N(V)C(Rc)=NV, -X2NRcRd, -X2SRC, -X2CN, -X2NO2, -X2CO2RC, -X2CONRcRd,
-X2C(O)RC, -X2OC(O)NRcRd, -X2NRdC(O)Rc, -X2NRdC(O)2Rc, -X2NRcC(O)NRcRd,
-X2NH-C(NH2)=NH, -X2NRcC(NH2)=NH, -X2NH-C(NH2)=NRc, -X2NH-C(NHRc)=NH, -
X2S(O)Rc, -X2S(O)2Rc, -X2S(O)3RC, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2S(O)2NRcRd, -X2NRcS(O)2Rc,
-X2S(O)2NRcRd and -X2N3;
R2c and R2d are each substituents independently selected from the group
consisting of halogen, -ORC; -SRC, -OC(O)RC, -NR°Rd, -Rc, -CN, -NO2, -CO2RC, -C(O)RC, -
NRdC(O)Rc, -NRdC(O)2Rc, -S(O)2Rc, -S(O)2NRcRd, -X2ORc, -O-X2ORc, -X2NRcRd,
-O-X2NRcRd and -NRd-X2CO2Rc;
each R3a substiruent is independently selected from the group consisting of
hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, -OC(O)Rf, -NRfRg, -SRf, -Rh, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg,
-C(O)Rf, -OC(O)NRfRg, -NRgC(O)Rf, -NRcC(O)2Rh, -NRf-C(O)NRfRg, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh,
-S(O)3Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh, -S(O)2NRfRg, -NRfS(O)2NRfRg, -X3ORf, -X3NRfRg, -X3SRf,
-X3S(O)2Rh, -X3S(O)3Rf, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -X3CN, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg, X3SO3Rf, -X3CO2Rf,
-X3CONRfRE, -X3C(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)Rf, -X3NRgC(O)2Rh, -Y, -X3Y and X3N3, wherein Y is
112

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
selected from the group consisting of a five or six-membered aryl ring, a five or six-
membered heteroaryl ring and three to eight membered heterocycloalkyl ring, wherein said Y
group is optionally substituted with from one to three substitutents selected from the group
consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg, -Rh, -SRf, -CN, -NO2, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -C(O)Rf, -
NRgC(O)Rf, -S(O)Rh, -S(O)2Rh, -NRfS(O)2Rh and -S(O)2NRfRg, and wherein each X3 is
independently CM alkylene, and each Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-
8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected from the
group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic
portions of X3, Rf, RB and Rh is optionally further substituted with from one to three members
selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°,
-S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2Ro, -NRoS(O)2Ro,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2,
-CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2Ro, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2
and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
5. A compound of claim 1, wherein the fused six membered ring having
vertices a, b, c and d is a fused pyridine, a fused pyrimidine ring, or an N-oxide thereof.
6. A compound of claim 1, wherein the fused six membered ring having
vertices a, b, c and d is a fused pyridine ring, or an N-oxide thereof.
7. A compound of claim 1, wherein the fused six membered ring having
vertices a, b, c and d is a fused pyrimidine ring, or an N-oxide thereof.
8. A compound of claim 1, wherein the fused six membered ring having
vertices a, b, c and d-is a fused pyrazine ring, or an N-oxide thereof.
9. A compound of claim 1, wherein the fused six membered ring having
vertices a, b, c and d is a fused pyridazine ring, or an N-oxide thereof.
10. A compound of claim 1, 5,6,7, 8 and 9, wherein each R3a is a member
independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, -NRfRg,
-C(O)Rf, -C(O)ORf, -S(O)Rf, -S(O)2Rf, -S(O)3Rf, -S(O)3Rh, -X3C(O)2Rf, X3S(O)3Rf,
-S(O)2NRfRg, -X3S(O)2NRfRg, -Rh, -CN, X3NRfRg, NRgC(O)Rf, X3N3 and Y, wherein Y is a
five to six-membered aryl, a five or six-membered heteroaryl ring or a three to eight-
113

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
merabered heterocycloalkyl ring selected from the group consisting of homopiperidinyl,
morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl, piperidinyl, azetidinyl, pyranyl,
tetrahydrofuranyl, piperazinzyl, phenyl, pyridyl, oxazolyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl,
imidazolyl, pyrazolyl, triazolyl and thiazolyl, optionally substituted with from one to three
substitutents selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf, -NRfRe, -Rh, -CN, wherein
each Rf and Rg is independently selected from hydrogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl and C3-6
cycloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected from the group consisting of C|.e alkyl, Q.6
haloalkyl and C3-6 cycloalkyl, wherein the aliphatic portions of Rf, R8 and Rh are optionally
further substituted with from one to three members selected from the group consisting of
-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°, -S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2,
-S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(R°)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°, -C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°,
-C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2, -CO2H, -CO2R°,
-NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2 and
-NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein R° is unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
11. A compound of claim 1 or 10, wherein m is 0-2.
12. A compound of claim 1 or 11, wherein m is 0-1.
13. A compound of claim 11, having formula a.
14. A compound of claim 11, having formula Ib.
15. A compound of claim 1, wherein one of said R3a groups is selected
from the group consisting of-Y and -X3-Y, wherein Y is selected from the group consisting
of homopiperidinyl, morpholinyl, thiomorpholinyl, pyrrolidinyl, piperidinyl, azetidinyl,
pyranyl, tetrahydrofuranyl, piperazinyl, phenyi, thienyl, furanyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl,
pyrazinyl, pyrrolyl, pyridizinyl, pyrazolyl, imidazolyl, thiazolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl,
isothiazolyl, triazolyl, tetrazolyl and oxadiazolyl, which is optionally substituted with from
one to three substituents independently selected from the group consisting of halogen, -ORf,
-NRfRE, -CORf, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -NO2, -Rh and -CN, wherein Rf and Rg are each
independently selected from the group consisting of H, C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8
haloalkyl, and each R is independently selected from the group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl and C1-8 haloalkyl.
114

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
16. A compound of claim 15, wherein Y is selected from the group
consisting of phenyl, pyridyl, oxazolyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl and thiazolyl, each of which
is optionally substituted with from one to three substituents independently selected from the
group consisting of halogen3 -ORf, -NRfRg, -CORf, -CO2Rf, -CONRfRg, -NO2, -Rh and -CN,
wherein Rf and Rg are each independently selected from the group consisting of H, C1-8 alkyl,
C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8 haloalkyl, and each Rh is independently selected from the group
consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl and C1-8 haloalkyl.
17. A compound of claim 1, wherein m is 0 or 1; and R2a is hydrogen.
18. A compound of claim 1, wherein R2a is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, F, Cl, Br and I.
19. A compound of claim 1, wherein the R3a moiety on the pyrazole ring is
hydrogen, halogen, chloro, fluoro, bromo, oxazolyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl,
thiazolyl, -R' or cyano.
20. A compound of claim 1 or 19, wherein R1, when present, is selected
from the group consisting of-CO2H or C1-4 alkyl, optionally substituted with -OH, -OR™,
-S(O)2Rm, -CO2H and -CO2Rm.
21. A compound of claim 19, wherein R1 is methyl; and m is 0-2.
22. A compound of claim 1 or 17, wherein at least one of said R3a
substituents is selected from the group consisting of halogen, C1-4 alkyl and C1-4 haloalkyl,
wherein the aliphatic portions are optionally substituted with from one to three members
selected from the group consisting of-OH, -ORo, -OC(O)NHR°, -OC(O)N(R°)2, -SH, -SR°,
-S(O)R°, -S(O)2R°, -SO2NH2, -S(O)2NHR°, -S(O)2N(Ro)2, -NHS(O)2R°, -NR°S(O)2R°,
-C(O)NH2, -C(O)NHR°, -C(O)N(R°)2, -C(O)R°, -NHC(O)R°, -NR°C(O)R°, -NHC(O)NH2,
-NR°C(O)NH2, -NR°C(O)NHR°, -NHC(O)NHR°, -NR°C(O)N(R°)2, -NHC(O)N(R°)2,
-CO2H, -CO2R°, -NHCO2R°, -NR°CO2R°, -CN, -NO2, -NH2, -NHR°, -N(R°)2, -NR°S(O)NH2
and -NR°S(O)2NHR°, wherein each R° is independently an unsubstituted C1-6 alkyl.
23. A compound of claim 1 or 22, wherein R2c is selected from the group
consisting of F, Cl, Br, CN, NO2, -CO2CH3, -C(O)CH3 and -S(O)2CH3.
115

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
24. A compound of claim 1 or 23, wherein R2d is selected from the group
consisting of-SRc, -0-X2-ORc, -X2-ORc, -OC(O)R°; -NRcRd, -Rc and -ORo.
25. The compound of claim 1, wherein R2c and R2d are each indendently
selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, F, Cl, Br, I and OR0.
26. A compound of claim 14, having a formula selected from the group
consisting of:

or an N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected from -SR°,
-O-X2-ORc, -X2-ORc, -Rc, -ORC and -NRdC(O)Rc; each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is
independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and
each R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C3-6
heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, amino, phenyl, pyridyl,
pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl.
27. A compound of claim 26, wherein ring vertex a is N.
28. A compound of claim 26, wherein ring vertex b is N.
29. A compound of claim 26, wherein ring vertex c is N.
30. A compound of claim 26, wherein ring vertex d is N.
31. A compound of claim 14, having a formula selected from the group
consisting of:

116

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
Ib3 Ib4
or an N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected from -SRC,
-O-X2-ORc, -X2-OR°, -Rc, -ORc, -NRcRd, -NRcS(O)2Rc and -NRdC(O)Rc; R2a is selected from
the group consisting of F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2Me, -CONH2, CN, oxazolyl, -CH2NH2, -CH2NHMe,
-CH2NMe2 and -CH=N-OH; each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is independently selected from
N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and each R3a is independently
selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6
cycloalkyl, C3-6 heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxadiazolyl,
oxazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl.
32. A compound of claim 31, wherein ring vertex a is N.
33. A compound of claim 31, wherein ring vertex b is N.
34. A compound of claim 31, wherein ring vertex c is N.
35. A compound of claim 31, wherein ring vertex d is N.
36. A compound of claim 13, having a formula selected from the group
consisting of:

or a N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected from -SRc,
-O-X2-ORc, -X2-ORc, -Rc, -ORc and -NRdC(O)Rc; each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is
independently selected from N and C(R3a), and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and
each R3a is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-6 alkyl,
C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6 heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl,
pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl, isoxazolyl and thiazolyl.
37. A compound of claim 36, wherein ring vertex a is N.
38. A compound of claim 36, wherein ring vertex b is N.
117

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
39. A compound of claim 36, wherein ring vertex c is N.
40. A compound of claim 36, wherein ring vertex d is N.
41. A compound of claim 13, having a formula selected from the group
consisting of:

or a N-oxide thereof; wherein R2c is halogen, cyano or nitro; R2d is selected from -SRc,
-O-X2-ORc, -X2-ORc, -Rc, -ORc and -NRdC(O)Rc; R2a is selected from the group consisting of
F, Cl, Br, I, -CO2Me, -CONH2, CN, oxazolyl, -CH2NH2, -CH2NHMe, -CH2NMe2 and -
CH=N-OH; each of ring vertices a, b, c and d is independently selected from N and C(R3a),
and from one to two of said ring vertices is N; and each R3a is independently selected from
the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, C1-6 alkyl, C1-6 haloalkyl, C3-6 cycloalkyl, C3-6
heterocycloalkyl, -S(O)2Rh, amino, phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, oxadiazolyl,
isoxazolyl and thiazolyl.
42. A compound of claim 41, wherein ring vertex a is N.
43. A compound of claim 41, wherein ring vertex b is N.
44. A compound of claim 41, wherein ring vertex c is N.
45. A compound of claim 41, wherein ring vertex d is N.
46. A compound of claim 1, wherein said compound is selected from the
set forth in Table 1, or their pharmaceutically acceptable salts and N-oxides thereof.
47. The compound of claim 1, wherein said compound is selected from the
group set forth on Table 2; and their pharmaceuticaHy acceptable salts and N-oxides thereof.
48. A pharmaceutical composition comprising a pharmaceuticaHy
acceptable excipient or carrier and a compound of claim 1.
118

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
49. A pharmaceutical composition of claim 48, wherein said composition
is formed as a stent or stent-graft device.
50. A method of treating CCR1-mediated diseases or conditions
comprising administering to a subject in need thereof a therapeutically effective amount of a
compound of any of claims 1-49 and 56-59.
51. A method in accordance with claim 50, wherein said CCR1-mediated
disease or condition is an inflammatory condition.
52. A method in accordance with claim 50, wherein said CCR1-mediated
disease or condition is an immunoregulatory disorder.
53. A method in accordance with claim 50, wherein said CCR1-mediated
disease or condition is selected from the group consisting of rheumatoid arthritis, multiple
sclerosis, transplant rejection, restenosis, dermatitis, eczema, urticaria, vasculitis,
inflammatory bowel disease, food allergy, asthma, Alzheimer's disease, Parkinson's disease,
psoriasis, lupus erythematosus, osteoarthritis, stroke, restenosis and encephalomyelitis.
54. A method in accordance with claim 50, wherein said administering is
oral, parenteral, rectal, transdermal, sublingual, nasal or topical.
55. A method in accordance with claim 50, wherein said compound is
administered in combination with an anti-inflammatory agent, analgesic agent, an anti-
proliferative agent, a metabolic inhibitor, a leukocyte migration inhibitor or an
immuno-modulator.
56. A compound of claim 1, wherein R3a is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, halogen, -ORf, NRfRg, -Rh, -Y, -CN, X3N3, -SO2Rh, X3NRfRg, X3Y,
-S(O)3Rf, -C(C=NORf)NRfRg, -NO2, and -NRgC(O)Rf, wherein Y is an optionally substituted
group selected from the group consisting of phenyl, pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, oxazolyl, thiazolyl,
oxadiazolyl and morpholinyl, and Rh is an optionally substituted group selected from the
group consisting of C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-8 cycloalkyl, and Rf and Rg are each
independently an optionally substituted group selected from the group consisting of
hydrogen, C1-8 alkyl, C1-8 haloalkyl and C3-8 cycloalkyl.
119

WO 2007/002293 PCT/US2006/024313
57. A compound of claim 56, wherein R3a is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, fluoro, chloro, bromo, iodo, amino, -CH3, oxazolyl, thiazolyl,
pyridyl, pyrimidinyl, morpholinyl, oxdiazolyl, -NHC(O)CH3, -CN,CH2N3, CH2SO3H, NO2,
-(C=NOH)NH2, -S(O)2CH3 and CH2NH2.
58. A compound of claim 1, wherein R2a is selected from the group
consisting of hydrogen, F, Cl, Br and I.
59. A compound of claim 1, wherein R2c and R2d are each indendently
selected from the group consisting of hydrogen, halogen, F, Cl, Br, I and ORc
120


Compounds are provided that act as potent antagonists of the CCR1 receptor, and have in vivo anti-inflammatory activity. The compounds are generally aryl piperazine derivatives and are useful in pharmaceutical compositions, methods for the treatment of CCR1-mediated diseases, and as controls in assays for the identification of competitive CCR1 antagonists.

Documents:

04883-kolnp-2007-abstract.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-claims.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-correspondence others.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-description complete.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-form 1.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-form 3.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-form 5.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-international publication.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-international search report.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-others.pdf

04883-kolnp-2007-pct priority document notification.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(19-07-2013)-ANNEXURE TO FORM 3.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(19-07-2013)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-ABSTRACT.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-CLAIMS.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-DESCRIPTION (COMPLETE).pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-FORM-1.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-FORM-2.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-OTHERS.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-PETITION UNDER RULE 137-1.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-PETITION UNDER RULE 137-2.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(20-02-2013)-PETITION UNDER RULE 137.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(21-10-2013)-ANNEXURE TO FORM 3.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(21-10-2013)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(24-12-2012)-ASSIGNMENT.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(24-12-2012)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(25-10-2013)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(26-11-2012)-ANNEXURE TO FORM 3.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-(26-11-2012)-CORRESPONDENCE.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-ASSIGNMENT.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-CORRESPONDENCE OTHERS 1.1.pdf

4883-kolnp-2007-form 18.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-FORM 3-1.1.pdf

4883-KOLNP-2007-GPA.pdf


Patent Number 265957
Indian Patent Application Number 4883/KOLNP/2007
PG Journal Number 13/2015
Publication Date 27-Mar-2015
Grant Date 25-Mar-2015
Date of Filing 14-Dec-2007
Name of Patentee CHEMOCENTRYX, INC.
Applicant Address 850 MAUDE AVE., MOUNTAIN VIEW, CALIFORNIA
Inventors:
# Inventor's Name Inventor's Address
1 ZHANG PENGLIE 251 WINCHESTER COURT, FOSTER CITY, CALIFORNIA 94404
2 WRIGHT JOHN J KIM 720 BAIR ISLAND ROAD, APT 107, REDWOOD CITY, CALIFORNIA 94063
3 CHEN WEI 791 RIDGEVIEW TERRACE, FREMONT, CALIFORNIA 94536
4 LELETI MANMOHAN R 555 E WASHINGTON AVE. #203, SUNNYVALE, CALIFORNIA 94086
5 LI LIANFA 443 VENTURA AVENUE, APT #20,, PALO ALTO, CALIFORNIA 94306
6 XU YUAN 4176 BELL COMMON,, FREMONT, CALIFORNIA 94536
7 LI YANDONG 121 LA QUEBRADA WAY, SAN JOSE, CALIFORNIA 94127
8 PENNELL ANDREW M K 442 ARLINGTON STREET, SAN FRANCISCO, CALIFORNIA 94131
PCT International Classification Number A61K 31/496
PCT International Application Number PCT/US2006/024313
PCT International Filing date 2006-06-22
PCT Conventions:
# PCT Application Number Date of Convention Priority Country
1 60/693525 2005-06-22 U.S.A.